<?xml version="1.0" encoding="UTF-8"?>
<itemContainer xmlns="http://omeka.org/schemas/omeka-xml/v5" xmlns:xsi="http://www.w3.org/2001/XMLSchema-instance" xsi:schemaLocation="http://omeka.org/schemas/omeka-xml/v5 http://omeka.org/schemas/omeka-xml/v5/omeka-xml-5-0.xsd" uri="https://caspercollege.cvlcollections.org/items?output=omeka-xml&amp;page=232" accessDate="2026-06-27T22:02:05+00:00">
  <miscellaneousContainer>
    <pagination>
      <pageNumber>232</pageNumber>
      <perPage>10</perPage>
      <totalResults>9812</totalResults>
    </pagination>
  </miscellaneousContainer>
  <item itemId="8011" public="1" featured="0">
    <fileContainer>
      <file fileId="8362">
        <src>https://caspercollege.cvlcollections.org/files/original/ed067cc49ea1647d804cd735fbde3d3b.pdf</src>
        <authentication>35f2ccda34e17a917ba7b99a9b851085</authentication>
        <elementSetContainer>
          <elementSet elementSetId="4">
            <name>PDF Text</name>
            <description/>
            <elementContainer>
              <element elementId="92">
                <name>Text</name>
                <description/>
                <elementTextContainer>
                  <elementText elementTextId="85529">
                    <text>CASPER

XCASPtB COLLEGE

WYOMING^

CHkLUNEC

�Challenge- In every academic discipline, to study,
to think, to express clearly one's knowledge and
understanding in suitable written forms.

�Challenge
Iv
Published at Casper Community College
Casper, Wyoming 82601
February 1991
Copyright by Casper Community College

�Challenge: 1991
Table of Contents

Genevieve A. O'Keefe

Justice Leads to Happiness

Vikki Epperson

El Invierno

Molar Volume of Oxygen

Interrogatories

5

......................................

1

Jason Miller........ ..................................

Nickie S. Peterson

Native American Poetry

Rox Monterastelli

Paula Franklin

8
10
15
18

Loel K. Robinson ................. ..

19

..........................................................................

24

Anita Schroeder

..................

25

............................................................................

21

Brief of a Supreme Court Decision

Mi Abuela

....................................

..............................................................................

From the Land of Morning Calm
El Flicker

...............................

Helen Schindler

Lee Glendenning

La Vista

...................

The Search for the Meaning of ARC

Fred W. Jacquot .................

28

Intake Memo

Gail Grosenheider ..................................

32

Lab Report

Nancy Young ........................................

36

Donna Karan

Lorinda Welch

....................................

42

.....................................

45

.............................................

52

Interoffice Memorandum of Law
Sign
Letters

Pat Lockhart

Anita Schroeder

Kerry Myers, Victoria Savage

Cover design executed by Eric Valdez

..........................................................

54

�Introduction
Casper College is pleased lo present the rilih issue of Challenge, a magazine to honor
excellence. As a display medium for academic endeavor. Challenge solicits superior
examples of student writing from all college disciplines: our purpose is lo illustrate both
the breadth and depth of course work on our campus. Instructors have selected
representative writing from their courses, and, though we do not include pieces from
writing classes, we encourage all forms; exams, reports, essays, term papers. This issue
represents work submitted in response lo the call for papers for two semesters, spring
1990 and fall 1990.
Arlene Larson, editor
Casper College
Casper, Wyoming
Spring, 1991

«l&gt;eC&lt;Al cot: E'-TtHM#

I-

ePER COl ..EGE

■- ' ' ■

�Justice Leads to Happiness
By Genevieve A. O’Keefe
Course: Ethics
Instructor: Dr. Robert Carlson
Assignment: The essay is in response to an examination question. The student received a
narration concerning Oliverotto of Fermo; the instruction was to write an essay to convince
Olivorolto that justice is the habit of giving someone his due (right); that Oliven&gt;tto ought to
practice justice willingly; and that justice will lead to happiness. The student was to use certain
terms and references in the essay as appmpriatc.

A simple question. What do all persons want?
A simple answer. Happiness. A more difficult
question. What is happiness? And, assuming
there is an answer to that question, a third and
final question. How docs one achieve this thing
etdied happiness?
By his very nature, that is his essence, his
inborn character, man has certain basic needs.
Man’s necessities include the obvious, air, water,
food, shelter. However, they also include such
nonmaterial things a.s knowledge, love and virtue.
Along with these needs, man also has wants, those
sometimes overwhelming desires for things

beyond his needs.
The idea of retd versus apparent goods parallels
the distinctions between needs and wants.
Mortimer J. Adler says in Six Great Ideas that
“Those things that satisfy or fulfill our needs or
natural desires arc really g(xxl for us. Those that
satisfy our want.s or acquired desires arc things
that appear good to us when we consciously desire
them.’’ Thi.s distinction is of utmost importance
because from it follows the very definition of
happiness, which is, “Happiness is the possession
of all the real goods in their proper order and
amount and apparent goods in so ftir as they do not

5

�Fogliani. A.s an adult he mastered Ute art of war.
Feeling that it was unworthy to be dependent on
Olliers, he set out to kill his uncle and seize control
of the city of Fenno. He planned and carried out a
scheme to do just that. He desired great power.
We make the assumption here that Oliverollo
must have felt that his actions would bring him
that which all men seek, happiness. Olivcrollo's
control of Fenno had lasted one year when he was
killed by yet someone else desiring great power.
A true moral relativist thoroughly schooled in
the Thrasymachian principle of justice, where
justice is held to be simply die advantage of the
stronger, Oliverollo would have u.s believe that
killing his uncle was in fact an act of justice. The
moral relativist holds the idea that all virtues,
including of course justice, and in fact all
judgments differ according to circumstances,
times or cultures. The ultimate reality of the
absolute, which is regarded as uncaused,
unmodified and complete, as well as constant,
hold.s no meaning for the relativist. Neither doc.s
the concept of objective order, how something
exists in and of itself, independent of the mind.
The moral relativist i.s concerned merely with the
subjective, the perception or conception of a thing
by the mind as opposed to its reality independent
of the mind. One last concept which is alien to the
moral relativist is universality. Nothing is seen a.s
affecting or including the whole; to him there is no
such thing as an unchanging nature through a
scries of changing relations. Rather than
generalizing, he deals in the particular, applying
principles a.s if they belong to a single, definite
person, thing, group or event.
Faced with the formidable task of convincing
Oliverollo or any moral relativist that his view of
justice a.s the advantage of the stronger is wrong
and that justice truly is giving each man his due, I
would begin by pointing out that failure is built
into his system of justice. The moral relativist
invites chaos and anarchy, the naked use of power
which translatc.s into the abuse of power. Relative
justice will not only result in no justice but will

interfere with the real gtxxls.” With that we have
answered our second question.
Man simply cannot need that which is bad for
him. The same is not true of his wants or desires.
The apparent good of something desired can in
fact be destructive if it impedes a man from
getting all his real goods. Perhaps a logical
conclusion then is that man’s needs do not require
control, but his wtuits do. Il looks as though the
control of these wants must necessarily be a
means to this end called happiness. Remember
our third question, how is happiness achieved?
The practice of the cardinal virtues, prudence,
tcmpcrimce, courage, and, most important, justice,
gives man this required control over his desire.s
and can therefore be logically considered a means
to that end. A virtuous life will ultimately result
in happiness.
Justice has been singled out as the most
important of the cardinal virtues based on
Socrates’ analogy of justice in the Slate and
justice in the Soul which is found in The Republic.
“But surely we cannot have forgotten this, that the
stale was just by reason of each of the three
classe.s found in it fulfilling its own function.”
Harmony between the Stale’s Workers, Rulers,
and Guardians analogous to the virtues of
temperance, courage, and prudence in the Soul is
only achieved through justice. Justice, lliat moral
virtue of giving someone his due, balances or
equalizes rights and debts.
All rights, whether natural and objective such
as those enumerated in our own Constitution,
“life, liberty and the pursuit of happiness,” or legal
and positive, those revocable, changeable rights
granted by law, the right to vote, to drink, to
receive an education, carry with them implied
debts or duties. Requiring two parties, some
object or matter and external action for its
perfection, justice exists only when there is a
correlation between the rights and duties of each
parly.
Now meet Oliverollo. An orphan from
infancy, he was raised by his uncle, Giovanni

6

�ullimalcly result in the relativist’s own destruction.
Alternatively, developing die habit, the second
nature, of giving each his due, right for debt, debt
for right, creates an undeniable harmony both
within the individual and widiin the community of
man. Justice its such is steeped in constancy and
objectivity. It is always rational.
Even when convinced that justice is in fact
giving someone his due, the relativists, including
Olivcroito, must realize that the reluctant practice
of justice is not sufficient. Recall that our

definition of happiness included “the possession of
all the real goods.’’ This leads us to the selfevident principle that we “ought to desire that
which is really good.” To desire that which is bad
would contradict our very nature. Justice is an
objective good. It exists apart from any opinion, is
constant and has true value. Therefore, that we
ought to desire justice and practice it willingly is a
logical conclusion. It quite naturally follows tliat
the possession of justice among his real goods will
always lead a man to happiness.

El Invierno
La nicve cubre la Tierra Madre
Ell una manta teinplada y segura.
Tolalmcntc suave.
Tolalmcntc tranquila.
Totalmenie blanca.

The Winter

Y como cl abrigo viejo
Que cubre la mujer de calle,
Algunas cosas sc quedan vistas.
Un arbol desnudo.
Una piedra certa de.
Un no silencioso.

The snow covers Mother Etirlh
In a warm, secure blanket.
Totally soft.
Totally calm.
Totally while.

Vikki Epperson
Spanish Composition I
(Linda Durham, Spanish Instructor)

And like the old coal
That covers the street woman,
Some things remain exposed.
The bare tree.
The Slone fence
The silent river

7

�Molar Volume of Oxygen
By Jason Miller
Course: Chemistry Laboratory 1
Instructor: Dr. Christian Michelson
Assignment: To prepare a written report of work performed in the laboratory.

small lest tube. Add a pinch of KCIO3 to ilic lest
lube and Mn02. Gently lap the test lube with a
finger to mix the contents of the lest tube. Wipe
the outside of the test lube with tissue to clean the
lube before weighing. Have the instructor find the
mass of the lest lube, Mn02, and KCIO3 using an
electric balance accurate to .0001 g. Record the
mass of the test lube, Mn02, and KCIO3.
Construct the lest lube to the apparatus by
attaching one end of a rubber hose to the lest lube
and attaching ihe other end to. the burette after
raising the bulb until the waler level in the burette
is to the lip of the burette. This is done to
minimize the amount of gas in the burette. When
U)c water level in the burette slops moving and the

Purpose: The purpose of this lab is delcmiinc
the molar volume of O2
Procedure: Attach a burette to a ring stand
using a spring clamp. Also, attach a water bulb to
the ring stand. Construct a water manometer by
inverting a burette and attaching a rubber hose to
the bottom end. Attach a water bulb to the other
end of the hose. Pour tap water into the bulb until
the waler level of the burette and bulb are equal
and the burette is almost full. Let the water level
in the bulb be about half full al this point. Pinch
the rubber hose to allow any gases in the hose Io
escape.
Place a very small quantity of manganese
dioxide (Mn02), which is used as a catalyst, in a

8

�apparatus has been checked for leaks, have the
instructor check the apparatus. Equalize the water
levels and record the volume of the waler in the
burette.
Heat gently to decompose the KCIO3 Shield
the burcite and rubber hose from the flame using a
wire gauze. Heal from the top of the lube to the
bollom to allow ihc oxygen gas to escape freely.
Continue heating until about 40 ml of gas is in the
burette. Stop heating and wail 15 minutes to allow
the reaction in the lest tube to stop and to allow the
system lo come to room temperature.
Equalize the waler levels and record the
volume. Remove the lest tube from the rubber
hose and wipe the outside of the test tube with
tissue lo clean the lube before weighing. Have the
instructor find the mass of the test lube and its
contents using an electric balance accurate lo
.0001g. Record the mass of ihe lest lube and its
contents. Record the lempcraiure of the water
using a thermometer. Record lhe atmospheric
pressure (Pjy,^) given by the instructor.

Compulation:
molar volume = (Vj-V2)/(molcs O2)
molar volume = (50.00ml 12.40m l)/((4.4434g - 4.4O32g)*(I
molc)/(2* 15.9994)) = 29930 mi/mole =29.93
L/mole
At STP
Pj = pQijyi - vapor pressure H2O = 632.6 mm
Hg-25.2mm Hg = 607.4 mm Hg
V, =29.93 Umole
Ti = Tpj20 = 26.2+273-K = 299.2’K
P2 = 7^ mm Hg
V2 = ?
T2 = 273’K

Data:
mass of lest tube,
Mn02,and KCIO3
volume of waler in
burette before heating
volume of waler in
burelte after heating
mass of lest lube and
contents after healing
Temperature of water
p
alm

Conclusion: The molar volume of O2 was
found to be 21.83 L/mole at STP which is an error
of 2.565% from the actual molar volume. The
greatest errors in the lab would have been caused
by lhe readings of lhe atmospheric pressure.
Other enors could have been caused when healing
lhe test tube such as waler turning into waler
vapor.

(Pl)*(Vi)Zr, = (P2)*(V2)/T2
(607.4 mm Hg)*(29.93l7mole)299.2’K = (760
mm Hg)*(V2)/273'K
V2 = 21.83 L/mole
Actual V2 is 22.4 L/mole
Percent Error= ((22.4-21.83)/22.4)* 100 =
2.565%

4.4434 g

50.00 ml

12.40 ml
4.4032 g
26.2 C
632.6 mm Hg

9

�Interrogatories
By Nickie S. Peterson
Course: Family Law
Instructor: Mary Kubichek
Given a scenario by the instructor, the student was to draft twenty-five interrogatory
questions to help the lawyer prepare for a lawsuit. Purpose of the suit would be for the plaintiff
to discover what property she should be entitled to.

10

�STATE OF WYOMING

COUNTY OF NATRONA

)
)
)

IN THE DISTRICT COURT
ss.
SEVENTH JUDICIAL DISTRICT

Civil Action No. Hill
LENA SMITH.
Plaintiff,

vs.

RICHARD JONES,
Dcfcndanl.

)
)
)
)
)
)
)
)
)

PLAINTIFF'S FIRST SET OF
INTERROGATORIES TO DEFENDANT

interrogatories thereby is requested to be served
ten days before the pretrial thereto or thereafter.
INTERROGATORY NO. 1

COMES NOW the Plaintiff herein, by and
through her attorney, James W. Owens, and
pursuant to the Wyoming Rules of Civil
Procedure, propounds the following Inter­
rogatories to Defendant, requesting that Defendant
respond to the same within thirty (30) days of the
receipt of the same by Defendant's counsel.

Please slate your present address and telephone
number. If you intend to change your address
during the pendency of the abovc-cniiilcd action,
state also the address (including the telephone
number) at which you intend to reside.
ANSWER:

DEFINITIONS AND REQUIREMENTS

1. The word “person” as used herein shall be
deemed to mean any natural person, partnership,
corporation, municipal corporation, slate or
governmental agency, or any other form of legal
entity of whatever nature.
2. With respect to each interrogatory herein
relating to oral communication, it is intended and
requested that the answer to each said
interrogatory set forth whether or not the oral
communication was by telephone or face to face,
and also that each answer set forth names,
addresses, business positions and occupations
involved in said communications, and the names
and addresses of any other person.s present during
said communications.
3. Supplementation of responses to these

INTERROGATORY NO.2

During the lime that you and the plaintiff lived
logclher, did you ever discuss marriage? If so,
please stale the number of limes marriage was
discussed and the context of those discussions.

ANSWER:

INTERROIJATORY NO. 3
During the lime that you and the plaintiff lived
logclher, how did you introduce one another to
other persons?

11

�ANSWER:
*

INTERROGATORY NO. 8

INTERROGATORY NO. 4

Were there ever any agreements concerning
living arrangements or separation? If so, slate the
nature of the agreements, whether written or oral,
the dales of the agreements and whether you have
a copy of any such agreement which is in writing.

During the time that you and the plaintiff lived
together, what were your arriingcmcnts concerning
domestic chores and responsibilities, and on what
do you base you answer to this interrogatory?

ANSWER:

ANSWER:

INTERRO(;ATORY no. 9
During the time lhal you and the plaintiff lived
logclher, did you file any joint income lax returns?
If so. please state for each joint rclurn filed, the
year for which it was filed, the office in which the
rclurn was filed, the amount of taxable income
reported, and whether you have a copy of the
return.

INTERROGATORY NO. 5

During the lime dial you and the plaintiff lived
together, what were your arrangements and
agreements concerning financial expectations and
responsibilities, and on what do you base your
answer to this interrogatory?

ANSWER:

ANSWER:

IN IERROGATORY NO. 10
INTERROGATORY NO. 6

Please state the names and addresses of all
banks, savings and loan associations, credit
unions, or other depositories in which you have
deposited monies, maintained checking accounts
or savings accounts, or established an IRA account
during the lime that you and plaintiff lived
logclher; in addition, for each such account, please
slate the type of account, the account number, and
name(s) on the account.

During the time that you and the plaintiff lived
together, what were your agreements and/or
expectations concerning the monogamy of the
relationship, and on what do you base your answer
to this interrogatory?
ANSWER:

ANSWER:

INTERROGATORY NO. 7

During the lime that you and the plaintiff lived
together, did you ever discuss arrangements or
agreements in the event of a separation? If so,
what was your understanding of the arrangements
or agreements?

INTERROGATORY NO. 11

Are there any safe deposit boxes, vaults, safes
or other places for deposit in safekeeping in which
you and/or the plaintiff have deposited any money,
documents, or other items of personal property
during the lime in which you and the plaintiff
lived together.

ANSWER:

12

�ANSWER:

INTERROGATORY NO. 16

INTERROGATORY NO. 12

Please list any and all personal property owned
by you, or you jointly with the plaintiff, during the
lime in which you and the plaintiff lived together.
Please include a description of the property, the
location of said property and the present value of
the property.

Please list all stocks and/or bonds owned by
you, or you and plaintiff jointly, during the time in
which you lived together.

ANSWER:
ANSWER:
INTERROGATORY NO. 17
interro(;atory no. 13

Do you hold any life insurance or annuity
policies? If so, with respect to each policy, please
Slate the name of die insuring company, the policy
number, the beneficiary or beneficiaries, the type
and face value of said policies, the person or entity
who pays the premiums thereon, and whether the
premiums arc current.

Please list any and all debts or outstanding
obligations owed by you, or by you jointly with
the plaintiff, and to whom those debts are owed.
ANSWER:

ANSWER:

INTERROGATORY NO. 14

Docs anyone owe money to you, or to you
jointly with the plaintiff? If so, please slate the
name and address of the dcblor(s), the form of
obligalions(s), the amount(s) owed, and the date
each of the obligations becomes due and payable.

INTERROGATORY NO. 18
Please list all gifts, assets, or benefits, without
labor or costs, and value thereof, which you have
received or which you made during the lime in
which you and the plaintiff lived together.

ANSWER:

ANSWER:

INTERROGATORY NO. 15
Please list any and all real property owned by
you, or you jointly with the plaintiff, during the
lime in which you and the plaintiff lived together.
Please include a description of the properly, the
location of said property and the present value of
the properly.

INTERROGATORY NO. 19

Have you ever been married? If so, please slate
the date of said marriage(s). the name, address and
telephone number of person(s) to whom you were
married, the final outcome of the marriagc(s), and,
if the marriage(s) ended in divorce, please include
the dalc(s), civil action number(s) and county(s)
and staie(s) in which the divorce decree(s) was
filed.

ANSWER:

13

�ANSWER:

intkrr(k;atory no. 23

interro(;atory no. 20

Arc you presently employed? If so, please state
your place of employment, including the address,
telephone number and your immediate supervisor.

Do you have any children? If so, please siaic
(heir names, addresses, dales of birih, names of
their mothers, lheir custodial parent and your
financial responsibility lo each of those children.

ANSWER:

INTERRO(;AT()RY no. 24

ANSWER:

Please list in detail your employment history
for the entire lime that you and the plaintiff were
living together. This should include, but not be
limited lo your place of employment, addrcs.s of
employer, telephone number, position held,
immediate supervisor, and your rate of pay.

interro(;atory no. 21

Other than this litigation, have you ever lx?cn
involved in a lawsuit? If so, please state the name
of the case, the docket number, the county and
stale in which the lawsuil was initiated, a detailed
description of your role in the lawsuil, and the
final outcome of the lawsuil.

ANSWER:

IN IERROGATORY NO. 25

ANSWER:

Please slate in detail all sources tind amotinis of
your present income, including but not limited lo
employment, interest income, dividend income,
inheritance and employee benefit plans. Do this
for each year during which you cohabiiaicd.

INTERROGATORY NO. 22

Have you ever been convicted of a criminal
offense? If so, please detail the incident of your
arrest, the county and state in which the arrest
and/or conviction was obtained, and the final
outcome of the conviction.

ANSWER:

DATED this

day of

, 1990.

ANSWER:

CERTIFICATE OF SERVICE
This is lo certify that on the day of
, 1990, at Casper, Wyoming, I served the above and foregoing
by depositing a true and correct copy thereof in the United Stales mail, duly enveloped, sufficient postage
prepaid and addressed lo:

James W. Owens

14

�Native American Poetry:
One Evolution
By Helen Schindler
Course: Native American Literature
Instructor: Jacqueline Valdez
Assignment: Write a research paper on some facet of Native American literature and/or
culture, tying the two together as appropriate.

Poetry can be defined as the use of language in
a way that creates an emotional response in the
reader. Poetry usually has a rhylhym that is
pleasant to the car, but not always, and is in
concert with the subject of the piece. It can be as
short as one or two words, or as lengthy as
multiple volumes. Because it creates an emotional
response, poetry is used deliberately for whatever
purpose the audior has in mind. Love, hate, joy,
hope, indifference, social awareness and change
are all within the range and scope of the poet.
Most cultures have poetry and probably all
cultures use it in similar ways. The poetry of

Native Americans expresses their hopes and
prayers, their history and religion, just as the
poetry of any other culture expresses the same
thing. As a culture deeply rooted in respect for the
environment and totally in tune with nature, the
American Indian has a wealth of spirituality to
draw from. In the past the poetry of Native
Americans reminded the people of their history
and heritage taught about religion and
relationships, and life and death through songs,
chants, and incantations, and continues to prepare
the people for the future by celebrating the past.
Although early Native Americans used poetry

15

�Historically prayer was the substance of life.
Unlike modem religions, even Christianity, belief
was not something that was acquired. It was a
lifestyle. There was no life without prayer.
Spirituality was who they were, a oneness with
the animals and the land. Prayer was the covenant
between the land and the gtxls. Alonzo Lopez,
writes in hi.s poem “Direction” (Dodge and
McCollough 68), a tribute to the four directions
plus the earth and sky. It is a prayer asking to be
one with the universe.
Native Americans used p&lt;x?try to teach. Many
hours were spent reciting the history, practices,
and beliefs of the community. The children were
taught the ways and works of their ancestors, how
the world began, how it will end, and all the
information needed to sustain life through the
songs and poems of the people. A Mandan poem,
"A Bedtime Song For Children" (Brandon 90-91),
sounds very much like a Mother G(K)sc rhyme. It
has a p!ca.sant rhythm, suspense, and a lesson on
fear. Poetry or songs were rarely used purely for
entertainment. Mostly they were used to gain
control of a situation, or to make something right,
as in prayer. Every part of Indian life had a
purpose. Nothing was wasted. Because
everything was lied to everything else, or the idea
of the circle, each action or thought or word wa.s
related.
Though the original Native American poetry
was oral, and not literal (Western Literature
Association 12), the work of modern Native
American poets is in the written form. The
artform is natural for Indians. A young Navajo is
quoted in The Way: An Anthology of American
Indian Literature as saying that “...poetry is not an
art form. It is the way the people talk” (Hill 62).
Thi.s statement has been debated, but it is evident
that free fomi verse comes naturally to many of
the modern poets. Rhymed verse is rare. That
medium seem.s to be loo restrictive and confining.
Much of the old way, the songs, prayers, and
chants, is found in the new, the poetry of young

continuously they were unaware of the art fonn.
John Bicrhorsl, in the foreward to the b(.x)k The
Sacred Path: Spells, Prayers and Power Songs of
the American Indians, remarks, “The word
‘poetry’ has no precise equivalent in the Native
American languages” (3). Instead, what is
considered poetry by European Americans is
actually songs, prayers, spells or words of songs.
William Brandon, in the introduction to The
Magic World: American Indian Songs and
Poems, writes, “Some of our most honored
masterpieces, such as the works of Homer, have
descended from the same conditions that apply to
most American Indian Literature and oral
tradition, translations, uncertain authorship” (xii).
Each poem and poet is highly individualistic.
Unlike European poetry, the voice is not that of
“I” but instead it is that of everyone, or a
representation of the whole. This reflects the
Indian humbleness of spirit and belief that
everyone is part of the whole. “Among the most
widespread metaphors in the Indian poetry arc
those in which good health is compared to sunrise,
or the lifetime of the individual is compared to a
path, or road” (Bierhorst 6). This explains the
relationship between natural forces in nature and
the people.
Every Indian had his own song. Some had
many songs. Wealth is measured by different
standard.s in different cultures, and often money or
material wealth meant very little when compiled
to spiritual wealth. To be without a song was to
be poor. Brandon states, “Life was a mystic
adventure and making up songs and singing them
its most important business” (xi). Each song was
as unique as the individual. The theme of each
song or poem is different to each reader just as
every subject is different or special to each poet.
In the introduction to the book Harper’s
Anthology of the 20th Century Native American
Poetry, Brian Swann says, “Native American
poetry is the poetry of historic witness” (Niatum
xvii)

16

�Native American writers. There is always a
reference to the land. The land is the common
denominator of all Native American writings,
beliefs, religious ceremonies and customs.
Niatum writes, “Simon Ortiz was told by his
grandfather, medicine man and elder of the kiva,
‘how we must sacredly concern ourselves with the
people and the holy earth’” (xxviii). In the new as
well as the old the earth, sky, animals, plants, and
man are very closely connected.

Leads me to my friend, the white man.

I come again to my miracle hill.
At last, I know the all of meOut diere, beyond, and here upon my hill. (93)
Both poems have reference to the wind, the
elements, and the soul. Even the love songs and
poems make reference to the earth and sky. This
is from an ancient song: “Ojibwa: Love-charm
Song:” “ ...I can do this where he may be/under
the earth/or in the very center of the earth!”
(Brandon, 99). This is the work of modem poet:
“Indian Love Letter” by Soge Track, “Lady of the
crescent moon/tonight I look at the sky...” (Dodge
and McCallough 113). In love all cultures seem to
be of one accord. The moon and the heavens and
the earth are universal symbols of love!
Native Americans have had their land stolen,
their families kilted, and their homes taken away
by the white government. They have been forced
to relocate to a hostile environment, learn new and
unfamiliar ways of doing things, and to reject their
heritage. Indians have, through the years, endured
more hardships, both physical and spiritual, than
most while men can even imagine. Their faith
has been shaken, their beliefs ridiculed and
belittled, and their souls bmised. However, if the
writings of the new generations of Native
Americans are noted, their spirit is still strong. It
seems they are finally beginning to find a place in
the new world in which they have been forced to
live. Their poetry is strong, and although it
contains, understandably, a strain of bitterness, it
also canies a message of hope to all the world.
Niatum writes, “Although the poets differ from
one another widely, they can hold their own on the
American literary scene today. They have become
an integral part of it” (xix). Through the
messages and feelings found in the poems of the
Indians, our world can find hope for a better,
stronger future.

Paiute: Ghost Dance Song
The whirlwind! The whirlwind!
The new earth comes into being
swiftly as snow.
The new earth comes into being
quietly as snow. (Brandon, 129)
The above is an example of an old song. The
following is an example of the new poetry. This is
found in The Whispering Wind: Poetry by Young
American Indians, edited by Terry Allen. The
author is Emerson Blackhorse Mitchell.
Miracle Hill

I stand upon my miracle hill.
Wondering of the yonder distance.
Thinking. When will I reach there?
I stand upon my miracle hill.
The wind whispers in my ear.
I hear the songs of the old ones.

1 stand upon my miracle hill.
My loneliness I wrap around me.
It is my striped blanket
I stand upon my miracle hill.
And send out touching wishes
To the world beyond hand's reach.
I stand upon my miracle hill.
The bluebird that flies above

17

�Works Cited
Allen, Terry, ed. The Whispering Wind: Poetry by Young American Indians. New York; Double Day &amp; Co., Inc.,
1972
Bierhorst. John. ed. The Sacred Path: Spells, Prayers and Power Songs of the American Indians. New York: William
Monow &amp; Co.. 1983.

Brandon. William, ed. The Magic World: American Indians Songs and Poems. New York: Alfred A Knopf. 1972.
Dodge. Robert K. and Joseph B. McCollough, eds. New and Old Voices ofWah' Kon-Tah. New York: International
Publishers, 1985

Hill, Shirley, ed. TheWay: An Anthology ofAmerican Indian Literature. New York: Alfred A Knopf, 1972.

Nialum, Duane, ed. Harper's Anthology of 20lh Century Native American Poetry. New York: Harper &amp; Row. 1988.
Western Literature Association. A Literacy History of the American West. Fl. Worth: Texas University Press. 1987.

La Vista
Estoy despertado por un dulce vienlecilo
Con las carcajadas de un gallo.
Al levantarme estoy sorprendido
del aroma de mi curarto
estoy acostumbrado al olor de un desayuno
continental
pero hoy no es asi
hoy hay un olor que no puedo describir
no es olor malo, Iosco
sino que un olor de temor
si temor tuviera olor.
Viendo por mi ventana,
parece que estoy saludado por un grupo
de nubes muy enojadas.
Un viento violento se
ha comido el vientecito dulce
que me levanta.
Ahora s6 que es cierto,
nos viene de visita la maldita Fifi.

The Visit
A gentle breeze carries the cackle
of an early rising rooster
Which promptly wakes me up.
While arising, I am startled at
the aroma in my quarter,
for I am expecting the usual scent
of my continental breakfast.
But not today; today there is a smell that is
indescribable:
not a bad or gross smell,
but a smell of fear,
if fear were an odor.
As I peak out my window,
it seems as if I am being greeted
by a barrage of dark angry clouds,
and the hoarse whistle of a violent wind
that has eaten the gentle breeze that awoke
me.
It can't be denied now,
we will be visited by Fifi.
Hurricane Fifi

Gordo (Lee Glendenning)
Spanish Composition I
(Linda Durham, Spanish Instructor)

18

�From the Land of Morning Cahn
To the Land of Milk and Honey
By Loel K. Robinson
Course: Cultural Anthropology
Instructor: Dr. Barbara Mueller
Assignment: The student was to interview someone from a foreign coxintry and, using an
assigned outline, write a modified ethnography.

Chang-Kyo Kim is a 65-year-old naturalized
citizen who emigrated from Korea to the United
States in 1945 to go to school. His original plan
was to finish his education and lake the best of
American know-how back to his homeland where
he would establish his career, marry and settle
down to a productive life. But, like many foreign
students, he ended up meeting his future wife in
this country and settling in the United Stales. For
this, I am grateful, because my interviewee also
happens to be my father.
Being this close to the subject, I had to consider

the effect our relationship would have on my
objectivity in this project, but in the end, the
“problems” presented an irresistible perspective to
work from. The opportunity to transmute booklearned knowledge about anthropology into an
understanding gained at a personal, more
meaningful level seemed quite in line with the
holistic philosophy of anthropology. Ideally, I
would be able to both contribute and gain insight
into the makeup and experiences of my foreignbom subject who, not incidentally, wielded great
influence upon my personality. Firsthand

19

�economy, eagerly seeking its place in intcmalitxial
affairs. Since World War II. Korea has been
aggressively westernizing its culture and like
many other Asian societies, a distinct contrast
exists between its native traditions and its current
synthesis of western culture and ideals.

knowledge of the person and secondhand
knowledge of the culture placed me in a category
often found in the United States-that of a firstgeneration American.

Overview

Religion, World, and Cosmic Views

This study focuses on a nanow, but interesting
portion of Korea's long history. The Korea my
father experienced was a country in flux:
engineering a bridge between the ancient and the
modem, the east and the west. The optimistic
description of Korea as the “Land of the Morning
Calm” belies its long tradition as the political
arena for Manchuria, China and Japan. From
1910 to 1945, Korea suffered under colonial rule
by Japan, the twentieth century episode in a long
history of political struggle and invasion. It is no
coincidence that Korea's Independence Day is
August 15, 1945--the day the Japanese
surrendered to the Allied forces and ended thirtyfive years of oppression.

Traces of prehistoric man have been uncovered
at Tonggwanjin, the Chommal Cave, and on
Yongdo island, but ethnically the Korean people
trace their roots to the Tungusic branch of the
Mongoloid race who also inhabited Siberia,
Manchuria and Mongolia. Because of its
geographic position, Korea integrated influences
from China, India, Manchuria and Japan into a
national identity, uniquely Korean.
Native shamanistic traditions undergird the
system of beliefs that also include Chinese
Confucianism, Indian Buddhism, and, most
recently, Christianity. Korea seems unusually
tolerant of religious differences. Statues of
Buddha, pagoda temples and Protestant churches
are everywhere, and evidence of each religion’s
impact on everyday Korean life is visible in
bustling local shrines, nationally observed
holidays, and a thriving YMCA. Historically,
Korea not only preserved Confucian ideology, but
also physically extended the scope of China's
influence to Japan. Increased missionary activity
coincided with increased nationalistic awareness
to merge political and spiritual senses in the early
1900‘s.
Holidays commemorate both religious and
political events. Buddha's birthday. Children's
Day, New Year’s, and ancestor worship break up
the seasons and reflect Korean reverence for old
age and family lies, and diverse religious
acceptance. An astrological calendar and a Julian
calendar serve different purposes: one mystical
and rich in folklore, the other practical for
functioning in an international timeframe.

Old resentments fade slowly. My father
has never owned a Japanese car. When I
graduated from high school, my father
refused to buy me the Japanese car my
mother and I deemed most practical for a
young college student commuting long
distances in an urban area. I did get that
car, but it was significant to me that my
mother had to pay for it with money earned
from her job. Years later, when / brought
up that incident, my father told me about his
father’s first car-~an American model—a
great luxury and the latest technology, and,
to a little boy, a chrome and steel
manifestation ofAmerican ingenuity.
It was under these circumstances that Korea
began its transition from an agrarian economy,
poor in natural resources, to a dynamic,
industralized country with a fast-growing open

20

�Language

translating his thoughts into English.

Material Culture

The Korean language falls within the Altaic
family. Before it mysteriously ended, the Altaic
civilization was believed to have been more
widespread than its southerly contemporary, the
Greek civilization. The breadth of Altaic
influence is evidenced from the crown jewels
found in the Kyongju tombs to ancient jewelry
displayed in Leningrad. Koreans had no written
language before C.500B.C., when Chinese
pictographs were imported, but Chinese symbols
didn’t precisely fit the Korean spoken language
and were accessible only to the scholarly elite
class, the yangban. So, during the Lee dynasty
(approximately 500 years ago) King Sejong
formed a taskforce of scholars to develop a
phonetic written language that the common people
could easily learn. This commendable cultural
achievement resulted in widespread literacy and
today the 40-leiter native alphabet, han'gul, is
relatively uncomplicated by regional diversity.

Korea is a mountainous, peninsular country on
the southeastern coast of Asia, bounded by the
Yellow Sea and the Sea of Japan. Its weather
ranges from harsh winters to monsoonal summers,
with only one-fifth of its land suitable for
cultivation. Traditional crops were rice, wheat and
barley, from which developed a fairly simple
cuisine based on rice and kimchi (a spicy,
fermented salad made of white turnips and
cabbage), supplemented by fish, and, to a lesser
degree, beef and pork. Soups were an important
part of meals, so eating utensils included long­
handled spoons with shallow bowls along with
chopsticks. Today's more affluent, industrialized
society has added more meat, poultry and dairy
products to their diet, and, since it has departed
from an agriculture-based economy, Korea now
imports most of its rice.
Traditionally, houses were built of stone
mortared with clay, and covered with a heavy tile
roof. A distinctively Korean feature called ondol
has existed since the fourth century B.C. Ondol is
a heating system consisting of a network of flues
installed in the stone floors which carry heal from
a central woodbuming stove to different rooms.
The stone floors are covered by clay, then a
linoleum-like oiled paper. Although this
ingenious system has allowed comfortable living
conditions for a majority of the population for
centuries, it has also contributed to a serious
problem Korea faces today-deforestation of their
countryside. Denuded forests combined with a
relatively sandy soil have led to soil erosion
problems, which, in turn, necessitate heavy
fertilization of arable lands. The Korean
government has invested heavily in reforestation
programs in an effort to alleviate this situation, but
it is said that today no tree in Korea stands over
twenty feet high.
Settlement patterns followed the needs of a
clan-based, agrarian society. In rural areas.

/ remember telling my father (when I was
young enough to get away with it) that he
“talked, funny." Z grew up in a society with
an insular attitude toward language. The
Ugly American always traveled abroad
expecting everyone to speak English. ! was
that American when I hitchhiked through
Europe in the early 70's. What a revelation
to travel no further than the New Jersey
Turnpike runs and find myself in a different
country than I had begun the day’s
adventure-complete with different culture,
food, and language. My father grew up
being forced to learn English and Japanese
besides his native language. With childish
shortsightedness he resented having to study
unnecessary subjects. My father’s “funny “
English was good enough to teach Wellesley
summer school students. He recollects the
day he realized he was thinking in English
rather than thinking in Korean and

21

�lone, reflecting popular culture throughout the
generations. Operatic music is composed as long,
dramatic narratives and preserves myths and
legends. Different types of music demanded
different kinds of instruments, each appropriate for
its genre of music. Court music used bells, flutes,
and L-shaped stone percussion inslrumcnis played
like a xylophone. Three eleven-lo-twelvc-stringed
instruments, and hourglass-shaped drums were
used for popular music. Today, most of this
indigenous music has taken on ceremonial
significance or has been adapted to western music
styles. In the early 1900s, a new form of popular
song called ch'angga combined elements of
Christian hymns, patriotic themes and western
melodies. These songs uplifted the oppressed
Koreans and fueled their growing sense of
nationalism during Japanese occupation.
Dancing between men and women as a social
activity is traditionally taboo. Most dancing was
done for ceremonial or religious purposes, and
ascribed movements like shoulder-shaking show a
markedly Mongol influence.

extended family units lived in compounds within
their farms. Small towns evolved inland to
provide support services for the farmers and along
seacoasts where fishing was successful. Today,
the effects of an industry-based economy have
drawn the majority of the population to the cities
where employment and previously self-produced
necessities are available.
Traditional Korean clothing includes short
jackets for men and women (cotton-quilted in
winter) and long, loose skirls or pants tied at the
ankle for men. White so predominated as the
color for everyday clothing that the Chinese and
Japanese called Koreans “white clothes people.”
Women and children brightened this plain palette
with bright stripes on the sleeves or multi-colored
ribbons. Shoes were moccasin-type of woven
straw, or less, often, leather. Men wore horsehair
hats shaped somewhat like tophats.
Today, traditional clothing is reserved for
special occasions while western-style clothing is
more typical for daily wear. One sees more
traditional clothing worn in rural areas, so that
traditional attire may eventually come to signify
socioeconomic differences.
Historically, weapons were spears, bows, and
anows, and broad swords. During the Japanese
invasions in the fifteenth century, Admiral Yi
Sunsin invented his famous “turtle ships“
(kobukson) which were iron-plated, spiked
fighting vessels with cannon installed on all sides.
Modem Korea's military abounds with the hightechnology weapons and nuclear power that
guarantee efficient destruction. Being the “bone“
that China and Japan fought over may have
developed in Korean society a fierce sense of
survival.
Chinese-inlluenced musical instruments and
styles predominate in classical Korean music.
Having three kinds of music ensures a rich
diversity of sound present in all facets of Korean
life. Court music has a formal, ritualized sound
similar to ceremonial Chinese and Japanese music,
while folk music has a more casual, emotional

Social Relationships
Koreans traditionally follow a patrilineal
method of tracing descent-girls were removed
from the family tree once they married. If
widowed, a virtuous young woman was not
expected to marry again. Widowers, on the other
hand, were permitted to remarry, especially if no
sons had been produced. The relationship
between father and son (particularly the eldest)
was primary, with the husband-wife relationship
taking a back seal to the male-dominant structure.
Sexual mores were strict, with boys and girls
leading segregated lives after they reached seven
years old. Homosexuality was taboo. Combined
with a reverence for one's ancestors, these clearcut codes of behavior helped define individual
identity and preserve family structures. Families
were male-centered and practiced primogeniture,
with the eldest son assuming the lion's share of
family responsibilities and obligations along with

22

�the family wealth and properly. The eldest son
was expected lo run the family farm, lake care of
aging parents and, especially, maintain the
ancestral tombs. Daughters were expected lo run
the household and raise the children, showing
deference lo the elder women's (mothers-in-law)
wisdom and experience. Relationships within
clans were exogamous and marital practices like
arranged marriages and not marrying within the
same “clan-family“ helped develop kinship
loyalties.

powerfully equalizing effect on Korean class
structure.
Sangmin the “common people’’ made up the
bulk of the population and ch'onmin were the
“despised people.“ The sangmin, although
common, were still respectable; however, the
ch'onmin were laborers, prostitutes and slaves.
Endogamy within class preserved the class
distinctions and, although 1 don't know how
strictly this is observed, prejudices take longer to
fade.

My father used lo tell us about his
father's eating at his own table while his
mother ate in the kitchen with the children.
Although he remembers being granted the
privilege of eating with his father on special
occasions (getting good grades, for
example), he never mentioned his mother
dining with his father. We children were
always more than a little in awe and fearful
of our father, although I now realize that he
is unusually affectionate for a Korean man.
When he suddenly sneezed, we jumped.

To me. my father has always presented a
frustrating and seemingly irrational
combination of intellectual idealism with
worldly prejudice. He believes in being a
“good" person and is morally sound,
uncompromisingly ethical and kind, but his
aristocratic mindset has always beenforeign
to me. Daddy, in America we have no class
distinctions, and everyone is born equal.
This preoccupation with yangban and our
family's two thousand years of written
history plays over and over again in my
head like an outdated song: Nostalgic, but
full of images belonging to some other time
and place.

Classes
Korean society is traditionally stratified into
four classes. This system has had a significant
effect on the shaping of politics and history. The
highest (yangban) class was the scholarly, ruling
class whose members filled elite government
positions while the chungin class or “middle
people’’ provided lower government officials. At
a philosophical level, the yangban professed
Buddhist ideals by which the individual was
rewarded for good works, but this conflicted with
equally accepted Confucian idealogy promoting
the concept of a central government, ruled by an
elite class trained in rational thought. Selfperpetuating interests of the yangban class
certainly fortified the movement whereby
Confucianism edged out Buddhism as the stale
religion. Not surprisingly, the yangban opposed
the development of han'gul which would exert a

Differences and Similarities
Korean's history reminds me very much of how
my own country has pieced a quilt of culturally
different people into one richly complex society.
We share a similar problem of “melting” diverse
cultural influences into a unified national identity
without losing the very differences that enrich our
culture. Prejudices, stereotypes and economic
disparity between groups of people chafe the
everyday operations of the societal machine.
Although the United Stales is geographically
much larger and endowed with more abundant
natural resources, Korea’s transition from an
agrarian society lo an industrialized world citizen
echoes the ruthless nature of our own Industrial
Age. Ecological and aesthetic concerns are

23

�perceived as antiquated, yet distinctly.
"Americanized." He finds they don't
observe traditional values (like respecting
their elders) as strongly as his generation.
Today's Korea is too hectic, too crowded
and the people are too pushy and rude. He
realizes that he has now spent two-thirds of
his life away from his homeland and,
although he is proud of the way Korea has
leaped into the upper ranks of international
citizenship, he is a little bit sad over what
has been lost.

postponed until the more urgent needs of progress
are satisfied. That “bridge” is not clearly defined
but is, instead, an organic process that synthesizes
diverse historical influences, current issues and
human nature.

My parents have recently visited Korea,
and on each occasion found themselves
playing the role of tourist, rather than
members of that society. Many changes
have occurred that disturbed my father's
memories and challenged his sense of what
Korea is. Among younger Koreans, he is

Sources
Covell, Jon Carter. Korea's Cultural Roots. 1983: HoHym International Corporation; Elizabeth, New Jersey

Lee, Ki-baik; trans. Edward W. Wagner. A New History of Korea. 1984. Harvard University Press; Cambridge,
Massachusetts.

El Flicker
Tengo calor dentro de mi casa.
Miro al pajaro carpintero colgando del porche,
Con los ojos negros y la garganta negra,
Hcoteando constantemenie en la nieve.
Con su pico largo.

The Flicker
I am warm inside my house.
I watch the woodpecker hanging on the porch.
With his black eyes and throat.
Pecking constantly at the snow.
With his long beak.

Rox Monterasielli
Spanish Composition I
(Linda Durham, Spanish Instructor)

24

�Brief of a Supreme
Court Decision
By Anita Schroeder
Course: Legal Research II
Instructor: MaryKubichek
Assignment: To brief a case decided by the United States Supreme Court within the last
year.

conception and that unborn children have
protectable interest in life. Therefore, the laws of
Missouri should be interpreted to provide imbom
children with the rights and privileges available to
other citizens of the State of Missouri.

Webster v. Reproductive Health Services, 492
U.S., 109 S. Ct., 106 L. Ed.2d 410 (1989).

Facts
In June, 1986, the Governor of Missouri signed
into law a state statute amending existing state law
concerning unborn children and abortions. This
statute had four parts that ended up being in
contention.
1.

2. Sections which prohibit the use of public
employees and facilities from performing or
assisting in abortions not necessary to save the life
of the mother.

A preamble stating that life begins at

3.

25

A section prohibiting the use of public

�funds for the purpose of counseling or
encouraging a woman to have an abortion not
necessary to save her life.

abortion counseling.

4. The requirement that physicians conduct
viability testing.

4. A section requiring that prior to an abortion
in which the doctor has reason to believe the
unborn child is 20 weeks or more gestational age,
the physician must perform tests to ascertain the
viability of the unborn child.
In July of 1986, five health care professionals
employed by the State of Missouri and two non­
profit corporations brought this class action suit to
challenge the constitutionality of the Missouri
statute.

Discussion and Reasoning
1. The Supreme Court need not pass on the
constitutionality of the preamble.
The preamble does not regulate abortion; it is
simply a value judgment by the stale. The
preamble could do no more than offer protection
to unborn children in tort or probate situations.
Lacking any authoritative construction of the
statute by the state courts, without which no
constitutional question arises, a judgment cannot
be made. There will be time enough to decide
later if and when the preamble is applied to a
given situation.

Procedure
A Class Action Suit was brought in the United
States District Court for the Western District of
Missouri, challenging the constitutionality of the
Missouri Statute.
Several weeks after the complaint was filed, the
District Court temporarily restrained enforcement
of several provisions of the act.
Following a three day trial in December of
1986, the District Court declared seven provisions
of the act unconstitutional and enjoined their
enforcement
The Court of Appeals for the Eighth Circuit
affirmed the District Court’s decision.
The case was appealed to the Supreme Court of
the United States.

2. The Court disagreed with the lower courts,
saying that the State need not fund abortions.
Nothing in the Constitution requires States to
enter or remain in the business of performing
abortions. Missouri’s refusal to allow public
employees to perform abortions in the public
hospitals leaves a pregnant woman with the same
choices as if the State had chosen not to operate
any public hospitals at all. A woman can still
obtain an abortion privately.

Issues

3. The prohibition on public funding being
used for abortion counseling became a moot issue.

The constitutionality of the following issues
was discussed in the Webster,

The health care officials had drawn their claim
on this issue saying they were not adversely
affected because the provision was directed at
public paid counselors.

1. The preamble, life begins at conception.
2. The prohibition on using public facilities or
employees to perform abortions.
3. The prohibition on public funding for

4. Viability tests were found to be
constitutional.

26

�It is constitutional to ensure that abortions are
not performed where the fetus is viable; this
furthers Missouri’s interest in protection of
potential human life.

Because none of the challenged provisions of
die Missouri Act properly before the court conflict
with the Constitution, die judgment of the court of
appeals was reversed.

Roe V. Wade

General Rule of Law

The Appellants and the United States as
Amicus Curiae (Charles Freed for the United
States) urged the Supreme Court to use Webster to
overturn Roe v. Wade. The facts in this case differ
from Roe, so it can't be overturned, but it was
narrowed.

Nothing in the constitution requires Slates to
enter into or remain in the business of performing
abordons. This decision nanows Roe v. Wade, in
that the trimester viability framework of Roe is not
to be striedy held to; instead tests will be done to
establish viability.

Mi Abuela
Yo estoy esperando sentir la caricia de tus ojos azules.
Yo estoy deseando ver lu sonrisa bella.
Yo estoy anhelando tenerte cerca,
Y quiero oir tu voz tiema en mi oreja.
iCu^do mi corazdn cese heriendo asi?
iPor que es muy arduo soliarte?

Grandmother
I am waidng to feel the caress of your blue eyes.
I am wishing to see your beautiful smile.
I am longing to have you near,
and to hear your sweet voice in my ear.
When will my heart stop hurting so?
Why is it so hard to let you go?

Paula Franklin
Spanish Composition I
(Linda Durham, Spanish Instructor)

27

�The Search for the
Meaning of ARC
By Fred W. Jacquot
Course: Physical Anthropology
Instructor: Dr. Barbara Mueller
Assignment: Student was to write a research paper about a controversial topic in physical
anthropology. This student went beyond the assignment to conduct his own research in the
development of language.

My sludy began with a search for all the
different meanings of the words ARC, ARK, and
ARCH, which are interchangeable, both as
individual words and as parts of larger words. I
began with that form of arc that means ‘bear’ in
Greek: ARKAS. I found that these ‘ARC’ words
readily lent themselves to being grouped by
general meanings. Then I took another word for
‘bear’, ARTH (Celtic), and looked for words that
had within them a form of ARTH whose
definitions would match the general groups into
which I already placed the ARC words. I then did

the same for Latin URSA (bear) and the French
OURS (bear). These are my groups: The Bear,
Names of Persons, Place Names, Ancient Lore or
Skill, Gods and Religion, Government and Kings,
Morals and Values, Geometry and Math, Building,
Sailing, The North, Bow or Hunter, Languages,
Earth, Metals, Mountains, Dawn and the East.
Not only did I find an abundance of words that
fit into my categories or meanings, but the search
itself also led me to begin analyzing all words with
an R in them, and that brought me to some
insights on both ancient men and their languages.

28

�emanating from a point) is the source of LEY (a
line on the earth).
Words may be reconstructed using metathesis,
spelling conventions, and L/R connections to
derive new insight into their meanings. For
instance, ABRAHAM by metathesis becomes ABRAHMA, or MAHARAB, MAHARAB may be
the root for ARAB, a people who trace their
lineage back to Abraham. It is also strikingly
close to the Sanskrit word MAHARAJ, the king.
There is evidence that archaic Homo sapiens
had a reverence for the cave bear, including
holding riles, and placing bear skulls, or remains,
in special vaults (Jolly 317). The facts that
ARKAS, ARTH, URSA, and OURS all mean
bear, and that other forms of these words have
meanings similar to each other, indicates that for
archaic Homo sapiens the word BEAR was rich in
diverse meanings. The diverseness of the
meanings of any word is probably a measure of its
original potency, its importance to archaic men.
Lines were important to megalithic men. In the
early l920’s Alfred Watkins discovered that the
megalithic sites of England lie upon lines called
‘leys’ (Michelle 9). Further, he discovered, by
walking the lines on the maps that connect these
places, that there were ancient paths and along
them standing stones, or stone crosses not shown
on any map. Some, when convenient, had been
taken over by Roman or modern road builders
(Michelle 29). It is now known that similar lines
run through Ireland, Northern France, Germany,
China (known as lung-mei, the paths of the
dragon), and the Nazca plains in Peru (Michelle
26).
To the ancients there was no difference
between a ‘line’ of descent or a mathematical
‘line’. Royally, religion, astronomy, and
mathematics were connected, were strongly
linked, by general ideas and principles. Tribes
were ruled by ‘priest-kings’. The king’s REIGN
was his RULE, He was a RULER, in that he held
the power and he set the RULES (Benevisia 307).
He was a RULER in that he came from a ‘line’ of

Below is most of what I found.
The Indo-European languages come from one
root stock. This stock began ‘branching’ as Icmg
ago as 24,000 B.C. (Renfrew 116). This implies
that language use is very ancient, and that the
Indo-European language users were already in
place in Europe and Asia long before the
introduction of the wheel, the horse, farming,
metals, writing, or sedentary living.
The Indo-Europeans were in close contact with
peoples of other language groups, particularly
those of the Semetic languages. This resulted in a
borrowing of words and ideas across language
barriers, whose extent is not yet fully realized.
This borrowing was so extensive that the different
languages came to be more oriented north and
south than by language family. Thus peoples in
Northern Europe revered the bear and gave the
ARC words to the people to the south, while they
revered the sun, or RA and gave many R words to
the p&gt;eople of the north.
Many ancient languages were written without
vowels and word metathesis was extensive. These
two practices gave rise to creative spelling and
spelling conventions, not all of which are yet
understood. Thus, in Greek, an AURA is a golden
glow but ARUM or OR are plain gold.
Often when an R comes before the vowel, it
refers to a deity, a priest, a religious idea, or a
mystery. When the R follows the vowel, this
implies something accessible to or knowable and
workable by a common person.
R is one of the ‘liquid’ consonants; the other is
L. There is a strong relationship between L and R
within words. The R word is often a principle or
its source, while the L word is its manifestation.
Thus the ROI is the source of the LOL The
ROYAL is the source of the LOYAL. The
REGAL is the source of the LEGAL. The RIGHT
(a direct course, a straight line, a lineage, an
agreement with a principle, a true or orthodox
belief) is the source of the LIGHT (enlightenment,
knowledge, that by which one is guided). The
RAY (the mathematical concept of a line

29

�kings and was lhe source for a future ‘line’. Il was
also his duty, as PRIEST, to lay out, with straight
‘lines’ lhe walls of cities, and lhe precincts of the
temples, to separate the sacred from the profane
(Benevista 307). He ORIENTED the temple to
face east, and RULED by divine RIGHT.
Another duty of lhe priest/king was lo act as
treasurer-assayer-goldsmith for the tribe. There
are many RO ad OR words connected with the
king and with gold: too many to be coincidence.
Many dynasties traced their ‘line’ back to a sun
god. Even today the Japanese emperors are able
lo do this. The sun, of course, is golden; and those
mortals who were properly oriented lo il and its
‘line’ would receive lustrous GLORY, FAVOR,
and GRACE.
Words with BAR, BER, RAB.REB, BRA,
BRE refer lo those times when the authority of the
priest-king was symbolized by his ROBE; which,
literally, was a BEAR skin. This has been carried
forward into modem customs. Thus the RABbi, a
Jewish religious teacher, is linked linguistically to
the Indian holy man, lhe BRAma.

There are interconnections between ARC
words; words that mean ‘bear’; words with ART,
ARS, ARD, ORT, ORD, in them; the word ARM;
the word MARS; lhe word RAM; and the words
ARES and ARIES. These relationships are shown
in Figure 1.
Words with some form of ARC are numerous
in our language. Here are some of them. These
words which are capitalized refer to that which is
unstraight, curved, or bent. The rest of the ARC
words in the list below have religious meanings:
charisma, charm, cherub, choir, CHORD, chorus,
church, CIRCLE, CORD, CORNER, CORONA,
coronate, CORRUGATE, CORRUPT, credo,
CREPE, CRESCENT. CROWN, CRINKLE,
CRITH, CROOK, CROOKED, cross, cure, curse,
CURVE, karma, sacred, TORCH (from O.E.D.)
The R words in our language are heavily
represented among words for metals, signs of lhe
Zodiac, and words that have religious meanings.
Even personal names in lhe Bible have a
disproportionality high number of R’s in them.
There are over 30 names in the Bible which have
an R in them and which begin with A. Six of
them also contain a RAM within them; and one
contains a REX (Schaff 1065-1076).
All I have presented suggests that in the limes
of the priest-kings knowledge was unified; and
individual words had more potent meanings than
they do today. This gave men a more connected,
and more united world. Evidence of this simpler
existence, of simpler beliefs, has been preserved in
a changing, yet ‘immortal’ vessel: language.
What we learn of these people will depend, in
part, upon our skills to survey, excavate, and
analyze this find.

Note: This paper is condensed from a thirtytwo page paper.
© 1990 Fred W. Jacquot

30

�Works Cited
Benvcnisl, Emile, et al. fndo-European Language and Society. Coral Gables, Florida: University of Miami Press,
1973,
Jolly, Clifford J. and Fred Plog. Physical Anihropology and Archeology, fourth edition. New York: Alfred A. Knopt,
Inc., 1987.
Michel, John. The View Over Atlantis, third printing. New York: Balantine Books, Inc., 1973.

O.E.D. Oxford English Dictionary. New York: The Clarenon Press, 1961.

Renfrew, Colin. Archeology and Language: The Puzzle ofIndo-European Origins. New York: Cambridge University
Press, 1987.
Scharf, Philip, editor, The Bible Interpreter, Comprehensive Bible Helps. New York: J.A. Wilmore and Company,
1897.

31

�c

Intake Memo
By Gail Grosenheider
Course: Paralegalism I
Instructor: Mary Kubichek
Assignment: Students were to interview a client then record the factual information for the
attorney who employs them.

32

�Law Ofiices of
Kubichek &amp; Kubichek
1234 Second Street
Casper, Wyoming 82601
(307) 266-1234

TO: Mary Kibichek
FROM: Gail Grosenheider
DATE OF MEMO; November 12. 1990
DATE OF INTERVIEW: November 10,1990

CASE: 1089
FILE: 90-234
KIND OF CASE: P.I.
RE: Adam Ables

PERSONAL DATA
NAME OF CLIENT: Adam B, Ables
ADDRESS: 7576 Oak Drive, Casper, Wy 82602
PHONE: 577-2345 (Home) 266-6789 (Work)
AGE:
35
MARITAL STATUS: Married
EMPLOYMENT: Casper Coal, Inc.

they arrived at Mr. Drake's home. They were told
the party was in back by the pool. On the deck a
bar and a table with hors d’oeuvres were set up.
The party was loud and it was obvious that many
of the people had already had quite a lot to drink.
Both Adam and Ann got a drink and began
walking to the other side of the pool where they
saw Barry and Cindy standing. At this time, Ed
Ego and Frank Flake spotted them and began
rushing toward Adam and Ann. They were
laughing and jostling each other and were quite
obviously drunk. When they got about three feet
from Adam and Ann, they lunged at Adam and Ed
said, "The last one at the party gets thrown into the
pool." They dragged Adam toward the pool and
half pushed and half threw him in. They were at
the comer of the pool and on the way in Adam's
right leg and ankle hit the side of the pool and
shattered.
Adam said he knew right away that he was
badly hurt. He tried to reach the edge of the pool,
but could not reach it. He had to swim to reach
the edge. He said he was in great pain and called

You asked me to conduct a comprehensive
intake interview of Adam Ables, our client, in
order to find out why he contacted our office. Mr.
Ables would like to find out if he can collect outof-pocket expenses incurred due to an accident on
July 20. 1988.
On July 20, 1988, Mr. Ables and his family
arrived in Spanish Fork, Utah, after a 10-hour
drive from their home in Gillette, Wyoming.
They had traveled to Spanish Fork to attend the
wedding of their friends, Barry Baker, and Cindy
Capps. Adam's wife, Ann, was to be a bridesmaid
for Cindy. They arrived later than expected, so
they went directly to the church where the
rehearsal for the wedding was being held. After
the rehearsal, the wedding party was going to a
local restaurant for the pre-nuptial dinner and then
to a party to be held by Dick Drake, a friend of the
groom. Adam and Ann wanted to shower and
change after their long trip so they told Barry and
Cindy to go to dinner without them and they
would meet them at the party at Dick's home later.
Approximately four hours later at 10:00 p.m.

33

�for help. He said everyone was laughing and a lol
of pushing had begun on the edges of (he pool as
other people were trying to push each other into
the pool. He said he could see that Ann was trying
to gel lo him to help him, but Ed and Frank were
threatening lo throw her into the pool also.
Finally, when Ann began crying, they realized that
Adam was really hurt. Adam said it was probably
only a matter of seconds while al! this took place,
but lo him it seemed like an eternity.
Ann, Ed, and Frank finally got Adam out of the
pool and it was quite evident that Adam's leg was
broken. Dick got Adam into his car and look him
and Ann to the local hospital. They arrived at the
emergency room in about ten minutes and were
assisted by a nurse. Dick, being very inebriated
himself, was rude and abusive to the nurse. After
a brief exam, the nurse said she was going to call a
doctor to examine Adam. After examining Adam,
Dr. Grim told them that Adam's leg was broken
and his ankle shattered. He said he would put an
inflatable cast on it and have it x-rayed in the
morning. The next morning Adam was x-rayed
and Dr. Grim said it was more complicated than
they could handle in Spanish Fork so Adam would
have lo be transported to Salt Lake City.
Dr. Hugh Helper told Adam and Ann surgery
would be needed to set the leg and pin the ankle,
and that Adam was scheduled for 4:00 p.m. that
afternoon, July 21. Ann relumed lo Spanish Fork
to take part in the 2:00 p.m. wedding and returned
to Sall Lake City immediately afterward lo be
there for Adam’s surgery. The surgery was
performed; the ankle was so badly shattered that
eight pins were required lo hold it together. Dr.
Helper told Adam and Ann that Adam would
probably always have a limp and arthritis would
most assuredly develop in the ankle as Adam
aged.
Adam had originally planned lo use only three
vacation days for the wedding. He was due to be
back at work at Energy, Inc., in Gillette,
Wyoming, July 24. He was released from the Sall
Lake City hospital on July 28. Dr. Helper said he

would be able to travel August 4 and made
arrangements for Adam to see Dr. Ivan Ink, an
orthopedic specialist in Casper, for continued
treatment. Adam said he could not afford lo fly,
so he and Ann and their three children drove from
Spanish Fork to Casper. They arrived in Casper
on August 6 for their appointment with Dr. Ink.
Adam was able lo return lo work August 18,
almost three weeks later than he had expected lo.
He had another surgery on September 22 lo
remove the pins that had been put in his ankle.
This caused him to be off work an additional three
weeks. After six months, Adam was able lo work
without the use of crutches or a cane. He
continued extensive therapy for six months, which
began December 20 and ended June 30,1989. He
has a slight limp now, but continues with therapy
al home.
Adam would like to receive the money he has
had lo pay over what his insurance covered for the
surgeries and therapy. His medical bills have
totaled $45,000. His insurance, Prudential,
covered 80% of the cost, or about $36,000,
leaving a balance of $9,000 that Adam had to pay.
This put a great financial burden on the family.
Also, Adam used all of the sick leave and vacation
leave he had accrued at Energy, Inc. and had to
take some no-pay days for his treatment. Energy,
Inc. also had a bonus program where every
employee that took no sick days during the year
received $500 for that year and after five years of
using no sick leave received an additional $1,000.
Adam had received the bonus three years prior to
the accident, so lost the bonus for years of 1988
and 1989 and also had lo start over on accruing the
five year sickness free bonus, which he would also
have received in 1989.
Adam contacted Janet Jones, a representative of
the Prudential Insurance Co., about whether Mr.
Drake's homeowner's policy through Stale Farm
would pick up any of the additional expense. He
said Ms. Jones told him to contact Mr. Drake
himself. He called Mr. Drake, who became
abusive and said that if Adam filed any kind of

34

�by holding the party and serving alcohol around
the pool, which could be a substantial hazard to
his intoxicated guests. It may also be considered
as to whether Mr. Ego and Mr. Flake are
responsible for part of the medical costs.
I told Mr. Ables you would contact him by
November 19 to let him know how to proceed. I
asked Mr. Ables to compile all his medical bills,
travel expenses, and a list of all the people he
knew who attended the party.
1 suggest that, pending your approval, I begin
the following tasks:
Organize and label the documents that Mr.
Ables brings to the office.
Contact the hospitals in Spanish Fork, Utah;
Salt Lake City, Utah; and Casper, Wyoming, for
medical reports.
Contact any witnesses from the list that Mr.
Ables compiles to get their statements on what
happened at the party.
Research the laws in Utah regarding the issue
of liability.

claim he would not be able to afford the insurance.
He would not even give Adam the name of his
insurance agent
CONCLUSION

Adam is a well spoken college educated man.
He is well dressed and handles himself in a
professional manner. He relates his situation in a
concise manner and is sure of all his facts. He and
his family moved to Casper approximately six
months ago. He said that since he can not get
cooperation from his insurance company or Mr.
Drake, he thought he would see if there was a way
to receive compensation. He does not appear to be
vindictive, but would like to be reimbursed for his
out-of-pocket expenses. He said he would appear
in court if required to, but would prefer not to.
In my judgment, Mr. Ables should be
reimbursed by State Farm for the expenses
incurred due to this injury. Also, there may be a
possibility that Mr. Drake can be found negligent

35

�Lab Report
By Nancy Young
Course: Data communications
Instructor: David Arndt
Assignment: After constructing a circuit to interface the Micro-85 computer with a UART,
Universal Asynchronous Receiver Transmitter, the student must write a program to transmit
serial data to a remote terminal. The program, written in INTEL assembly language, must
activate a clock to drive the UART and the transmit data from a data block or from a keyboard.
In the lab report, the student must explain how the program works and what each instruction
does in the program. The student must also explain how the program manipulates the
hardware in the Micro-85 and in the UART interface circuit.

Objective:
1. Demonstrate competence in the use of
software to program the U/XRT and the 8155 I/O to
transmit serial data through a RS-232 Protocol
Link.
2. Analyze the software programs used in this
experiment

1 MC1489 RS-232 Line Driver
1 14 Pin Parallel Jumper Cable
1 14 Pin Wire-wrap Socket
Procedures:
Consuiicl the circuit
(See diagram on page 37)

Program:
MVI A, $AO Moving the low bit of the word
into the accumulator to structure
the Time Reg.
OUT 24
Write the low bit to the 8155.

Materials Required:
Casper College 8085 Microprocessor system
1AY-5-1013A UART
1 MCI488 RS-232 Line Driver

36

�lltl*

ftS-232 PROTOCOL LINK
document Nui&gt;*«r
A
CftSPCR COLLEGE
5at&lt;:
14.

I e

Procedures: Construct the circuit (from page 36)

19.2kHz (BAUD rate x 16) and convert that
number (base 10) to Hex =AO. This is sent out to
the low byte of the Timer Reg. (24). To set up the
high byte of the Timer, the clock function
described on Pg 2-32 Fig. 5 of the handout for the
8155 is the one we want-01. (This code causes
the 8155 Timer to produce a square wave output.)
This code is pul in the last 2 bits of the Reg. The
remainder of the Reg. can be used if the structure
word is more than 8 bits. This (40) is sent to the
high byte of the Timer al address $25.
MVI A, $CD Move immediately the data (CD)

Moving the high bit of the word
into the accumulator to structure
the Timer Reg.
OUT 25
Write the low bit to the 8155.
This much of the program sets up the Timer
Reg. that sets up the BAUD rate. This system
runs on 1200 BAUD; to calcualte this we start
with the rate we want 1200x16 = 19200Hz at T
out. The system is using a divide by 16 clock, so
to gel the input frequency for the UART, we
multiply the BAUD rate by 16. Then the clock of
the 8155 is at 3.072 MHz; we divide that by the
MVI A, $40

37

�to the accumulator; this is the word
to structure the Command Reg.
Out 20
Sends the word CD to the
Command Reg.
D7 D6 D5 D4 D3 D2 DI DO
out=l
1
1
0 0
110
1 =CD in=0
Timer Mode
Pon C Port B Port A
LXi H, 5200

MOV B, IB

MOV A,M

OUT 21

MVIA ,$18

OUT 23

OUT 23

Address where the message is
stored in ASC II code. It was put
there by using the G0800 program
(word processing). After it was
typed in, the number of bits used
was looked at by looking at
address 2043. This bit was IB.
Move into B Reg. the number of
bits used in the message. B Reg.
will be the counter. Each lime a
bit is transferred, it will be
decremented and when 00 it will
be loaded again to start over.
Move
from
memory
to
accumulator to go out the port, as
only the ports can be accessed
through the accumulator.
21 is the code for Port A. Writing
the bit in accumulator to Port A
which is connected to data bit
input lines on the UART.
Move into the accumulator the
word 18. This Word will be pul on
Port C in Binary Code.
23 is the code for Port C. Write
the Word 18 to Port C. UART
Data Strobe is connected to pin
Port C4 high. This must go low to
load data into Holding Reg. At the
same time not changing line 3 of
PortC.

ORI$10

OUT 23

CALL 0870

INXH

DCRB

PortC
7 6
0 0

ANI EF

5 4 3 2 1 0
0 1
1 0 0 0
1
8
This ANDs the Word EF to the

JNZ 5011

38

accumulator in Binary Code.
0001 1000
mioiiin
0000 1000
Bit masking the word EF sent to
PORT C. Port C has this Binary
Code on it 1110 1111 which
allows the code of the first ASC 11
character in the message to go into
the Holding Reg. of the UART.
OR the Word 10 in Binary to the
accumulator. At this point the
accumulator has 0000 1000 in it;
byORingSlO fOOOl 0000)
Out 23 sends the Binary Code to
Port C. Port C reads 0001 1000
and the DS line is high again and
won't go low again until the loop is
repealed.
Call sub routine to set up a time
delay, so the data won't be written
over on the serial out line.
lime delay
1
BAUD rate
x # of bit
times
1__
1200 X 10 divided by 8 micr.s=
$0411
Address 2032 = 11 2035=01 loop
2033 = 04
This gives the UART time to
transfer the data from the Shift
Reg. out to serial out line, to be
printed on the screen of the
peripheral device.
Increment the HL Reg. pair by
one. This pair will point to the next
ASC II character in the message.
Decrement Reg. B by one. This is
the count of how many characters
there are in the message. When
this is 00 the JMP will start the
message over again.
Jump if not zero to address 5011.

�This is the move from memory ihc
ASC II character into the
accumulator. When zero it will
fall through to next instruction.
JMP 500C
Jump to address 500C where the
pointer is reset to point at the
beginning address and the message
starts over.
To change BAUD rates was easy.

OUT 25

This much of the program sets up the Timer
Reg. which sets up the BAUD rate. This system
runs on 300 BAUD; to calculate this, we start with
the rate we want 300x16=4800Hz at T out. The
system is using a divide by 16 clock, so to get the
imput frequency for the UART we multiply the
BAUD rate by 16. Then the clock of the 8155 ia
at 3.072 MHz.; we divide that by 4.8kHz (BAUD
rale x 16) and convert that number (base 10) to
Hex = 80. This is sent out to the low byte of the
Timer Reg. (24). To set up the high byte of the
Timer, the clock function described on Pg 2-32
Fig. 5 of the handout for the 8155 is the one we
wanl--01 (this code causes the 8155 Timer to
produce a square wave output). This code is sent
to the high byte of the Timer al address $23. The
remainder of the Reg. can be used if the siruclure
word is more that 8 bits.
MVI A,$CD Move immediately the data (CD)
to the accumulator; this is the word
to structure the Commmand Reg.
Out 20
Sends the word CD to the
Command Reg.
D7 D6 D5 D4 D3 D2 DI DO
1
10 0
110
l=CDout=l
Timer Mode
PorlC PortB Port A in=0
CALL04D0 Sub-routine that picks up data
from accumulator that was pul
there from the keyboard.
OUT 21
21 is the code for Port A. Writing
the bit in accumulator to Port A
which is connected to the data bit
imput lines on the UART.
MVI A,$18
Move into the accumulator the
Word 18. This word will be put
on Port C in Binary code.
OUT 23
23 is the code for Port C. Write
the Word 18 to Port C. UART
Data Strobe is connected to pin
Poti C4 high. This must go low to

BAUD rate 300
Change the first two MVI to the new BAUD.
300x 16 = 4800 3.072MHz
4800
= 640 = $0280
1 0
6 5 4 3 2
Low bit = 80 7
1
0 0 0 0 0 0 0

High Bit = 42

7
0

6
1

5
0

4
0

3
0

2
0

1
1

0
0

Delay:
1
X 10 divided by 8 micro.sec. = $1046
300
This wasn’t slow enough so changed the lower
bit to FF Turns out to 10.444 bit times
BAUD 9600
9600 X 16 = 153.6k 3.072M =
153.6
20=$14
7
6 5 4 3
1 0
0 0 0
7 6 5 4 3
1 0 0 0
0
Delay:

2
1
2
0

1
0
1
0

0
0
0
0

10
8 micro sec = $0082

Program: 2
MVI A, $80

OUT 24
MVI A,$42

into the accumulator to structure
the Timer Reg.
Write the low bit 10 the 8155.

Moving the low bit of the word
into the accumulator to structure
the Timer Reg.
Write the low bit to the 8155.
Moving the high bit of the word

39

�load data into Holding Reg. At the
same time not changing line 3 of
PortC.

Tx shift elk
This is the Shift Reg.
It shifts the data out
low byte and then high
byte, one bit at a Ume.
2. Explain the function of the DS strobe: How
does it woric? What does it do?
The data must first be sent to the parallel output
port. A changing level on the control port (PC4)
must then strobe the DS line of the UART. This
process is repeated until all the data is transmitted.
Pulsed low to load data bits into the transmitter
Data Holding Register. The Data Holding Reg. is
loading during the rising edge of the DS pulse. To
make it strobe, we used bit masking. This was
done by ANDing and Oring in the accumulator. If
we want the line high we put a word in Port C that
has that bit high. EX.S18 = 00()l 1000
1110 nil
0000 1000 = this is
the result we need.
An AND gate only allows a high when all
inputs are high so we figure out what word will
develop the wanted result In this case a $EF. To
change it back we can OR.
EX. 0000 1000
00010000
(XX)1 KXX) this is the result needed.
The OR gate only allows a high when the lines
are either or low but not both the same. Data
strobe went high and then low then high again.
3. Explain how the circuit on the proloboard
converts the TTL level serial data to the voltage
level required for the RS-232 cable. Al the second
terminal, how is the RS-232 voltage level
convened back to the required TTL volatage
level?
On each end of the RS-232 cable there are two
drivers. One is the 1488 that drives the voltage to
+12V and -12V for series output and a 1489 to
return +12V and -12V back to 5 volts for series
input This is the interface circuits needed to meet
the RS-232 standard.
My proto-board is at one end of the cable and

PORTC

ANIEF

OUT 23

ORI $10

OUT 23

JMP51(XZ;

7 6 5 4 3 2 1 0
0 0 0 1
1 0 0 0
1
8
This ANDs the Word EF to the
accumulator in Binary Code. Bit
masking.
0001 1000
niioiiin
0000 1000
The word EF sent to Port C. Port
C has this Binary Code on it 1110
1111 which allows the code of the
first ASC II character in message
to go onto the Holding Reg. of the
UART.
OR the Word 10 in Binary to the
accumulator. At this point the
accumulatcM* has
0000 1000
in it; by ORing $ 10 (0001 0000)
to the acculator the
contents is
0001 1000*
again.
Sending the binary code to Port C.
Port C reads 0001 1000 and the
DS line is high again and won't go
low again until the loop is
repeated.
Jump to address 510C where the
CALL 04D0 is and this starts the
keyboard over again.

Questions:
1. How does the UART covert parrallel data to
serial data? The UART has 8 RD lines for imput
port. When data is on these lines, there is 0-5V to
determine high and low. Each line is connected to
the Holding Register. Port A is connected to RD
lines
7 6 5 4 3 2 1 0
This is the Holding Reg.
7 6 5 4 3 2 1 0

40

�iniercsiing to manipulate the BAUD rale. Al first
il was hard to understand the way the transmitting
terminal could be at one BAUD rate and ihc
receiver at another BAUD rale. If I have il right,
the transmitting terminal is connected in serial to
Ihc CPU and is separate from the circuit that
drives the UART. This separation allows the CPU
to operate at one BAUD rate, while the UART’s
BAUD rale is controlled by the Timer of the 8155
S/0 chip.

ihc icrininal was al other end of the cable. The
lerniinal must have these circuits on board.

Conclusion:
This lab was interesting in that I experienced
checking the DART after we had handled it
without grounding. The Oscilloscope was used
and the pins were checked to see if data wits being
iransiniiicd, and if the ckx'k was being received
from the CPU. My UART was unharmed. Il was

41

�Dornia Karan
By Lorinda Welch
Course: Dress for Success
Instructor: June Winkel
Assignment: Select a fashion designer and clear the choice with the instructor. Research the
designer, using the local libraries. Write a paper including the education of the designer, her/his
experience and talents, and distinguishing features of her/his designs. Present the information
to the class, using illustrations of designs if possible.

She’s been in the fashion business for years but
until about five years ago, her name wasn't heard
very much, or al least by the general public. Who
is this woman and how does she play a pari in the
fashion industry?
The woman is Donna Karan and she filled a
void with her new designs. Her maiden name was
Donna Faske. Both of her parents were in the
fashion industry. Her mother was Helen Faske.
She was a model on Seventh Avenue and later
was a showroom saleswoman. Her father was
Gabby Faske. He ran a custom tailoring shop on
West 38ih Street. Ms. Karan remembers hearing
he made "suits for gangsters and Broadway show

business types. He died when Donna was just
three" (Donovan, 33).
Donna and her mother lived in Woodmere,
Long Island. Donna attended Parson's School of
Design in Manhattan. She quit Parsons to go to
work for Anne Klein. Miss Klein was her idol.
At this time she married Mark Karan and in a
short time she became Anne Klein's main
assistant.
In May 1974, Miss Klein died. "The company
was unprepared for it, and so was Donna Karan.
Two days before Miss Klein's death, Donna had
given birth to a daughter, Gabrielle" (Donovan,
33).

42

�A man by lhe name of Toinio Taki was half
owner of Anne Klein and company and he would
prove lo be Donna Karan's mosl powerful
supporter. Mr. Taki and the other two owners had
a big dispute after Miss Klein'.s death. The two
other owners had other designers that they wanted
lo lake Miss Klein's place. Mr. Taki wanted
Donna Karan and, since he owned half of the
company, he got her. At this lime Donna Karan
was only iwcnty-six years old.
She teamed up with a classmate she had al
Parsons name Louis DcU'Olio, bul she was the
dominant member.
In 1983, Miss Karan helped launch a
less-expensive spin-off collection called
Anne Klein !I, similar in design bul made
with diflercnt fabrics, mostly in the Far
East. Anne Klein II retailed for about
half the price of the Anne Klein line.
(Donovan, 90)
While all of this was happening, she divorced
Mark Karan. In the fall of 1983 she married
Stephen Weiss.
Things hadn’t been going very well between
Miss Karan and lhe Anne Klein company. She
wanted lo slay with lhe Anne Klein company bul
wanted her own line. The reason she wanted her
own line was that the clothes she'd designed there
were becoming common, because of the Anne
Klein II collection. Everyone was wearing them.
She wanted her own identity, something
exclusive.
As badly as she wanted to leave Anne Klein
and Company, she was frightened because il was
lhe only job she'd had.
The company didn't need two designers and
Mr. Taki was willing lo set her up in her own
business. Finally lhe president of the company,
Frank Mori, settled lhe whole mailer. He fired
her.
“Donna Karan's company is financed by a
partnership consisting of Takihyo Inc., Tornio
Taki himself, Frank Mori and Donna Karan and
Stephen Weiss” (Donovan, 90).

Donna Karan pul up only a little money for her
company bul she owns half of it. She also is lhe
chief executive officer and a paid consultant lo
Takihyo Inc. She also owns lhe rights to her own
name.
Her company first started al home in what had
been her husband's workroom. "The new
company soon acquired a president, Julius Stern"
(Donovan, 90) Then a studio was acquired on
West 40ih Street.
The public saw Miss Karan's designs for the
first lime al a showing ai the Bergdorf Gootlman
store in New York, June 18, 1985. Her designs
were a totally new concept. Many of the big
stores were slow lo respond because they thought
her designs were loo special. Bul after a few
showings her staff could hardly keep up with all
of the appointments for businesses that wanted her
dollies.
When Miss Karan couldn't really come up with
anything new, she was introduced lo baby llama
fabric. The first garmcl lo come from the llama
was "a cape-collared jacket with a Hare below the
bell" (Donovan, 90). In 1986 these retailed for as
high as S2,20().
Some of her most popular garments arc her
bodysuits. They are made “of Italian-made jersey
or knit. Il has long sieves, pulls on over the head,
fits snugly and fastens with snaps at the crotch.
This serves lo replace a conventional sweater or
blouse” (Donovan, 32). Miss Karan has designed
more than a dozen versions. Most of these have
padded shoulders. These rcuiil from SI80. The
key to Donna Karan's latest fashions arc lhe
Unilards. They're heavier than leotards bul
trimmer than jumpsuits.
In lhe spring of 1989, Donna Karan pul out a
new sportswear line called DKNY (Donna Karan
New York). This line is comfortable and versatile
and about half the price of her designer collection.
“Il looks professional and feminine" (People's,
105). One of her mosl popular items of the
DKNY line is a khaki trench coal. It look.s as If II
was four years old and well worn.

43

�protrusions" (Donovan 33). Her designs are well
suited for women on the go who don’t have time
to worry about their clothes.
Donna Karan says "fashion for the nineties
woman will be determined by two necessities:
lots of options and case of dressing" (Ladics.42)
As the years go on, Donna Karan's designs just
keep getting belter and each year she makes a
larger impact on the fashion industry. Just a few
years ago she wasn't even heard of. Now Donna
Karan's designs are in great demand.

Donna Karan designs clothes that she'd wear,
something that is feminine yet makes her look like
a professional, or, when she's not working,
something relaxed and comfortable.
The DKNY line is not a cheaper version of her
more expensive line but a whole different kind of
design.
Donna Karan's designs "have a way of
emphasizing the curves of the waist and the hips
without stringently outlining them. The shawls
and jackets are camouflage for bumps and

Works Cited

Donovan, C. "How a Fashion Star is Bom." New York Times Magazine 4 May 1986: 24-30+.

"Donna Karan." People's Weekly 25 Dee 1989-1 Jan 1990: 104-5
"Forecast." Ladies Home Journal November 1989: 42.

44

�Interoffice
Memorandum of Law
By Anita Schroeder
Course: Legal Research 11
Instructor: Mary Kubichek
Assignment: To research issues and case law relevant to a case and to write an interoffice
memorandum of law for an attorney.

45

�INTEROFFICE MEMORANDUM OF LAW

TO: Mary Kubichck
FROM: Anita Schroeder
DATE: October 9,1990
OUR CLIENT: Charles Schracklc
OPPONENT: Jeffrey Poller
OFFICE FILE NO: 90-S-12
DOCKET NO: C.A. No. 120398
RE: Whether Charles Schrackle was negligent in the accident causing the death of Katherine Poller

that he was driving in a careless, negligent and
reckless manner; That he failed to give proper
warning of his sudden approach, and that Mr.
Shrackic's negligence caused the suffering and
death of Mrs. Poller.

Statement of Assignment
You asked me to do preliminary research into
the case of our client Charles Shrackic. A cause of
action for negligence has been filed against him by
Jeffrey Potter as a result of the death of his wife,
Katherine. I will research the standard of care and
whether Mr. Shrackle breached his duly thus
causing the death of Mrs. Poller. I will also
research the possible contributory negligence of
Mrs. Potter.

Discussion
It is our responsibility lo show that Mr.
Shrackle was not negligent. Negligence is defined
by the Nita Courts as,
the failure lo use the degree of care that an
ordinary careful and prudent person would
use under the same or similar circumstance.

Legal Issues

1. Did Charles Shrackle breach his duly of care
in the accident involving the death of Katherine
Poller?
2. Was Katherine Potter contribulorily
negligent in causing her own death?

Brown v. Jones, 52 P.2d 101 (NITA 1989).

The elements of negligence are set fourth as
duty, breach of duly, proximate cause and
damages. We are concerned with duly, breach of
duly and proximate cause. Since damages will be
decided by the court, based on Finding of fact, I
will not discuss damages. I will analyze
proximate cause in the light of contributory
negligence.

Facte

On November 30, 1989, at about 3:00 PM ,
Charles Shrackle was driving a pick-up truck to a
work site. He passed through the inlcrseciion of
Mathes and Kirby Streets making a left turn on to
Kirby. The truck he was driving struck Katherine
Poller, causing her injuries which ultimately
resulted in death. Mr. Shrackic said that he did
not sec Mrs. Poller al any lime before the accident.
Jeffrey Poller, husband of the deceased, has
filed a complaint against Mr. Shrackic claiming

Analysis of Duty and Breach of Duty
Duty

The duly that Mr. Shrackle had in operating a
motor vehicle is set fourth in the Nita Statutes.

46

�The driver of a moior vehicle shall yield ihc
right of way, by slowing down or slopping if
necessary, to a pedestrian crossing the roadway
within a crosswalk when the pedestrian is upon
that half of the roadway in which the vehicle is
traveling, or when cither the vehicle or the
pedestrian is approaching that half of the roadway
so closely that the pedestrian is in danger.

In Johnson v. Brown, lhe driver of the vehicle
stnick a child that ran into the street. The evidence
affirmatively showed, in this case, that the driver
did nol sec lhe child al any lime prior to lhe
accident, and no evidence was presented lo show
dial the driver had reason to believe that children
would be playing in the vicinity of the place where
the accident occurred. The facts in our case arc
similar lo those in Johnson in that Mr. Shrackle
claims nol lo have seen Mrs. Poller before lhe
accident. Mr. Shrackic could nol be expected to
anticipate that a pedestrian would be crossing
anywhere but in the crosswalk.
Case law has established that negligence cannot
be assumed by the fact that injury has occurred.
An inference of negligence cannot be
drawn from the bare fact that an injury
has occurred.

Nita Stat. §89-12(4) (a).
Mr. Shrackic had a duly to slow down or slop if
necessary for a pedestrian crossing in lhe roadway
and to exercise ordinary care to avoid a collision.
Breach of Duty

Mr. Scrackle did not breach his duly

Mr. Schracklc told us that he slowed at lhe
intersection, observed school children on the
sidewalk, and proceeded, because there were no
pedestrians in the crosswalk. He staled that he did
not see Mrs. Potter at any lime before the accident.
According to Mr. Shrackic, Mrs. Poller was not
crossing in the crosswalk.
The courts have held that a driver is not
required lo anticipate that a pedestrian would be
crossing a roadway al any point other than the
crosswalk.
It is nol required of the of a vehicle lo
anticipate that a pedestrian would be
crossing a boulevard in the middle of a
block al any point other than within a
marked crosswalk, any more that a driver
should anticipate that a vehicle
approaching from the opposite direction
would suddenly cross over into his lane
of traffic. A driver cannot be charged
with failure to exercise due care toward a
person so crossing lhe boulevard, unless
such person is observed in lime for the
driver lo avoid colliding with him.

Johnson v. Brown, supra., quoting Lesage v.
Lar^ey Lumber Co., 99 Mont. 372, 43 P.2d 896
(no date).

In the Johnson case the plaintiffs argued that
even through the record was silent as to any direct
evidence of negligence on lhe pan of the
defendant, his negligence could be inferred from
lhe fact that lhe child was injured. The court
stated that an inference of negligence cannot be
drawn from lhe mere fact that an injury has
happened. In our case as well as in Johnson, the
fad that Mrs. Poller was injured is nol an
inference of Mr. Schrackle’s negligence.
We can argue that Mr. Schracklc did nol breach
his duty because a driver is not required to
anticipate that a pedestrian will be crossing at a
place other than lhe crosswalk, or that he failed lo
exercise due care because he didn't sec Mrs. Potter
in lime lo avoid a collision. Furthermore, an
inference of negligence cannot be drawn from lhe
mere fact that he was involved in the accident
which caused Mrs. Poller's injuries.

Johnson v. Brown, 77 Nev. 61, 359 P.2d 80
(1961).

Mr. Shrackle did breach his duly

47

�comes in contact with a pedestrian, to the
injury of the latter, raises no presumption
of negligence on the part of ihc driver of
the vehicle.

Jeffrey Poller has claimed lhal Mr. Schrackic
breached his duly lo exercise due care, by driving
in a careless, negligent and reckless manner. Mr.
Poller has argued dial Mr. Shracklc failed to keep
a proper lookout or give proper warning by
sounding his horn or giving some other signal.
The sialules state that even the individual
having the right of way must exercise care to
avoid collisions.
This right of way, however, is not
absolute, but rather creates a duly upon
ihe parly having the right of way to
exercise ordinary care lo avoid collisions.

Johnson v. Brown, supra., quoting, Johnson v,
Herring, 89 Mont. 420, 425, 300 P. 535, 536 (no
date).

The courts have upheld that the driver must
keep a lookout.
the rule is well established...that a driver
must keep a lookout so that he can see
what is plainly visible in front of him,
and failure lo do so is negligence as a
matter of law.

The facLs in the Johnson case, as stated earlier,
showed lhal even though a child was struck by the
vehicle, the mere fact that the injury took place
was not an inference of negligence. In our case
the fact lhal Mr. Shrackle struck Mrs. Potter with
his truck is not of itself proof of negligence.
Mr. Potter has also claimed that Mr. Shrackle
was negligent in not sounding his horn to warn
Mrs. Poller of his sudden approach. Bui,
according to the courts, failure to sound your horn
is not necessarily negligence.
lhal the failure of the driver of appellee's
truck to sound the horn was not
negligence.

State V. Mattan, 207 Neb, 679, 300 N.W.2d 810
(1981).

Stalder v. Bowen, 373 S.W.2d 824 (Tex. Civ.
App. 1963).

In State v. Mattan, the facts showed lhal the
driver of the vehicle was negligent in not keeping
a proper watch; these same facts arc being asserted
by Mr. Poller against Mr. Shrackle.
In order to prove his claim of negligence
against Mr. Schrackle, Mr. Potter will have lo
prove lhal Mr. Shrackle failed lo exercise ordinary
care by not keeping a proper watch. If Mr. Poller
is able lo show that Mr. Shrackle did indeed
breach his duty, he will have statutory and case
law backing.
However, it remains an issue at fact if Mr.
Schrackle did all he could have done lo maintain a
proper watch and fulfill the standard of care. Just
because the accident happened is no proof of
negligence.
The mere fact that a motor driver vehicle

In Stalder v. Bowen, the woman was injured
when she entered the street from behind a bus and
driver of the truck who struck her had no lime to
react. The driver was not negligent because he
didn't see her in time to sound his horn. The jury
found lhal the truck driver was not driving too
fast, nor was he negligent in failing to blow his
horn. Il also held that the truck driver had no lime
to avoid the accident and that he did not fail to
keep a proper lookout. These facts are similar to
our case in that Mr. Schrackle claims not lo have
seen Mrs. Potter before his truck struck her. He
had no lime in which lo blow his horn or give any
other warning.
Jeff Potter has claimed lhal Mr. Shrackle
breached his duly to exercise due care by failure lo
keep a proper lookout or give warning by

Nila Slat. § 89-12 (4) (c).

48

�sounding his hom. However, we should be able lo
show that that Mr. Shrackic did not breach his
duly and therefore was not ncgligeni in the
accident that resulted in Mrs. Potter’s death.

We have the burden of proving that Mrs. Poller
was coniributorily negligent, and that her
negligence proximately caused her death.
It will have to be shown that by nol taking care
to yield the right of way to all vehicles upon the
roadway Mrs. Potter was negligent and the
proximate cause of her own death.
The duty of the pedestrian to yield to vehicles
on the roadway is plain in the Nita Statutes.
A pedestrian crossing a roadway al any
point other than within a marked
crosswalk shall yield ihc right of way lo
all vehicles upon the roadway.

Analysis of Proximate Cause
Proximate cause is the element of negligence
that determines the awarding of damages.
Proximate cause is set forth as
That cause which, in a natural and
continuous sequence, produces the injury,
and without which the injury would not
have occurred.

Nila Stat § 89-12 (4) (b).

Brown v. Jones, supra, al 102.

Besides the statutory duly of a pedestrian to
yield the right of way when crossing the roadway
outside the crosswalk, the pedestrian also has the
duty to look in the direction or directions of
anticipated danger.
...look in the direction or directions of
anticipated danger, and lo continue lo be
alcri to safeguard against injury.

Proximate cause is the natural and foreseeable
result of a person's negligent actions.
Mr. Sfirackle as proximate cause

Mr. Potter has the burden of proving that Mr.
Shrackic was negligent, and that his negligence
proximately caused Mrs. Potter’s death.
In order to prove that Mr. Shrackle's actions
were the proximate cause of Mrs. Poller's death, it
is going to have to be shown that he breached hi.s
duly. But for the breach of duly there i,s no
negligence.
The right to recover damages for the injury
inlliclcd on the pedestrian depends upon pr(x)f of
the allegation, necessary in the complaint, that the
driver of the vehicle was guilty of negligence
proximately causing injury.

Gibb V. Cleave, 12 Cal. App.2d 517, 55 P.2d 938
(1963), quoting, Lavin v. Pereria, 52 P.2d 518
(Cal. App. no dale).
The pedestrian in the Gibb case entered the
roadway without looking for approaching
vehicles; he was struck by the driver of a vehicle
who could not see him because he was wearing
dark clothing and it was a dark and rainy evening.
The pedestrian was found lo be coniributorily
negligent in causing the accident.
In a similar case Fennel v. Miller, the
pedestrian was not crossing in the crosswalk and
ihercfore was the negligent party in the accident.
The court found that the accident would not have
occurred if the pedestrian would have exercised
reasonable caution. Fennel v. Miller, 94 Nev. 528,
583 P.2d 445 (1976).
The courts have also stated that a pedestrian
who leaves a place of safely (lhe curb) lo enter a

Johnson v. Brown, supra, al 83.
I have previously discussed Mr. Shrackle’s duly
and whether or not he breached that duly. In
relation lo proximate cause, if ihal duly was not
breached, there was no negligence and Mr.
Shrackle's actions would nol have been the
proximate cause of Mrs. Poller's death.

Mrs. Poller's contributory negligence as it effects
proximate cause

49

�busy street would have constructive knowledge of
the danger.
The trial judge defined ''negligence” and
''proximate cause" in the usual fashion
which included the element of
foreseeability on the part of Mrs. Slaldcr.
Certainly Mrs. Slaldcr had constructive
knowledge of the danger which would be
involved in moving suddenly from her
place of safely...out onto a busy street.

Franco was coniributorily negligent because she
attempted to cross die street at a point other than
in the crosswalk. The court held that the act of
crossing outside of the crosswalk docs not of itself
determine contributory negligence. In Mr.
Shrackic’s case we will need lo show that Mrs.
Poller was not only crossing unlawfully but that in
crossing outside of the crosswalk she was not
taking ordinary care.
In order to prove that Mrs. Poller's contributory
negligence was the proximate cause of her death,
we will have lo establish the following: that Mrs.
Potter was crossing the the street unlawfully or
dial in crossing she was not exercising due care lo
keep a reasonable watch; and that Mrs. Potter
being a prudent person would have had
constructive knowledge and thereby foreseeability
of the danger.
One of the problems in this case i.s that Mrs.
Potter is not alive lo testify on her behalf and
therefore the burden of proof on the plaintiff, Mr.
Poller, is not as great as it would be if she were
alive.
It is well established dial in a death action
a plaintiff is not held lo as high a degree of
proof of the cause of action as when a
injured plaintiff can himself or herself
describe the occurrence upon which the
action is based.

Sialder V. Bowen, supra, at 825.
The judge in the Slaldcr case staled that but for
Mrs. Slaldcr'.s negligence of entering the street the
accident would not have occurred.
In Gibb v. Cleave, Fennell v. Miller, and
Stalder v. Bowen, the courts held that the
pedestrian in each case was coniributorily
negligent, causing the accident which brought
about their injuries. If we are able to show by the
facts that Mrs. Potter was not keeping a proper
watch for vehicles or that she was crossing outside
of the crosswalk at the lime of the accident, we
will be able to show that she was coniributorily
negligent, as were the pedestrians in the above
cited cases.
Mr. Poller has slated in the complaint dial his
wife was crossing die street lawfully at the lime of
the accident and, therefore, was not coniributorily
negligent. Even if she was crossing the street
outside of the crosswalk, that fact of itself docs not
constitute negligence.
Il is well recognized that the act of a
pedestrian in crossing a street al a point
other than an intersection does not, of
itself, constitute contributory negligence
as a matter of law.

Franco v. ZingarelH, supra., quoting. Noseworthy
v,CityofNewYork,'V)^ N.Y. 76 (nodate).

Mr. Potter docs not have as great a burden of
proof lo show that Mr. Shrackle was negligent as
we do in showing that Mrs. Poller was
coniributorily negligent.
Another problem lo be overcome in Mr.
Shrackle’s case is that contributory negligence
does not bar recovery of damages.
In all actions hereafter brought for
personal injuries, or where such injuries
have resulted in death, or for injury to
properly, the fact that the person injured.

Franco v. ZingarelH, 424 N.Y.S.2d 185 (1980).

In the case of Franco v. ZingarelH, the
defendant, who struck Mrs. Franco as she stepped
off the curb into the street, tried to assert that Mrs.

50

�having facts and law in their favor. Other factors
that will determine the ultimate outcome of this
case include the burden of proof issue and lhe
facts of the case. Mr. Poller’s burden of pr(X)f is
not as great as ours and the facts of the case have
yet to be fully investigated and analyzed.

or the owner of the properly, or the
person having control over the properly
may have been guilty of conlribulory
negligence shall not bar a recovery, bul
damages shall be diminished by the jury
in proportion to ihc amount of negligence
atlribulablc lo ihe person injured, or lhe
owner of the properly, or lhe person
having control over the pro|X?riy.

Recoiuinendation
Proximate cause is going to be determined by
the evidence presented in this case. We need to
thoroughly investigate the accident, interviewing
all lhe witnesses including the paramedic.s and
police who worked the accident. We should also
determine the condition of Mr. Shrackic'.s truck al
the lime of lhe accident, were his brdkc.s working
properly’.' etc. We will need to interview Mr.
Shrackic more thoroughly to determine his
condition al the time, including his health, state of
mind, vision and driving ability. We should also
examine Mr. Shrackle’s past driving record.
We need lo be prepared for a scillcmcni in case
we arc unable to prove fully that Mr. Shrackic did
not breach his duly. In preparation, we should
find out whal Mr. Potter’s expenses were for the
medical treatment and burial of hi.s wife. We
should contact a financial expert and dclcrminc
what Mrs. Poller's expected earning power would
have been.

Nila Slat. § 140-3.

Even if it is concluded thai Mrs. Poller was
contribulorily negligent, the jury may award Mr.
Poller damages proportionate lo the amount of
negligence attributed to Mr. Shrackic.

Conclusion
Mr. Shrackic has grounds lo deny negligence
and lo show that Mrs. Poller was contribulorily
negligent in causing her death. Mr. Potter has
claimed that Mr. Schrackle was negligent and
therefore the proximate cause of Mrs. Poller's
death.
Both sides have statutes and case law to
establish their claims; each side will show facts lo
favor iheir position. The damages, if awarded,
will be based on the faces establishing proximalc
cause.
There is a balance in this case with each side

51

�Sign
By Pat Lockhart
Course: Beginning and Intermediate WordPerfect
Instructor: Lois Davis
Assignment: Be creative. Student did these designs with banner mania.

52

�53

�Letters
By Kerry Myers
Victoria Savage
Course: Business Communications
Instructor: Frances Schroder
Assignment: In response to fictional situations specified by the instructor, students
composed appropriate memos and letters.

TO:

Nordstrom Store Managers

FROM:

Kerry Myers

DATE:

October 1,1990

SUBJECT:

Taking Initiatives in Customer Service

I am pleased to see that our emphasis on customer service is paying off. We must
continue to encourage our clerks to take initiative in serving our customers.
Our company is growing more rapidly than most department store chains, and our
sales per square foot are twice the industry average. Morale among our employees
is high and to maintain this I am giving you authorization to use Nordstrom gift
certificates, within your budget, as rewards to employees who best exemplify the
company’s philosophy.

As an added bonus, the store with the most sales this quarter will receive a trip for
two to the Bahamas! Thank you for your continued effort. Keep up the good work
and gotxl luck!
kjm

54

�September 27, 1990

Mr. Robert Gian
Information Processing Manager
Novell systems
1234 Archway Road
Tucson, AZ 67834
Dear Mr. Gian:

I have been informed that Kerry Myers has applied for an information
processing position with your company.
Kerry has been one of my advisees since she was admitted to Casper
College as a freshman. She has had a continual GPA of 3.45. Kerry is a
very hard working student, and she has always been punctual and well
prepared for her classes. She has shown great interest in learning and has
proven she can excel in the computer-oriented world. Kerry is very eager
and willing to learn anything you set before her.

I highly recommend her and believe she will be an asset to your company.

Sincerely,

Joseph Scott

55

�October 10, 1990

Mrs. Jane Rich
123 Wealthy Lane
Moneyvilic, AZ 86033

Dear Mrs. Rich
Children are our most precious resource. They are the future of our community, our nation, and
our world. They need our protection, our provision, and especially our love.

Most children have these needs met by their parents. Not all children, however, arc fortunate
enough to have families. In our community alone, there are over one hundred orphans who
desperately need your help.

Daybreak Orphanage, located on the outskirts of Moneyville, provides food, clothing, and
schooling as well as shelter and love for 125 girls and boys between the ages of 6 and 16. The
staff is committed to providing the best care possible for these children in a friendly, wann
environment. The expenses incurred, however, are loo great for the orphanage to handle. This is
where your help becomes vital.
The cost of feeding, clothing, schooling, and various miscellaneous expenses such as medicinal
care comes to just $5 each day per each child. Your donation of $150 will support a child
completely for one month. You will receive a monthly newsletter from the orphiinage and letters
from the orphans, plus the personal satisfaction of knowing you’ve helped a boy or girl to grow
and live a happier life.

Please, invest in our future by donating to Daybreak Orphanage today. You will receive a receipt
of your tax deductible contribution for your records within a month. Send your contributions to:

Daybreak Orphanage
11 Newhome Road
Moneyville, AZ 86033

Sincerely

Mrs. Victoria M. Savage
vms

56

�Spring 1991

�</text>
                  </elementText>
                </elementTextContainer>
              </element>
            </elementContainer>
          </elementSet>
        </elementSetContainer>
      </file>
    </fileContainer>
    <collection collectionId="212">
      <elementSetContainer>
        <elementSet elementSetId="1">
          <name>Dublin Core</name>
          <description>The Dublin Core metadata element set is common to all Omeka records, including items, files, and collections. For more information see, http://dublincore.org/documents/dces/.</description>
          <elementContainer>
            <element elementId="50">
              <name>Title</name>
              <description>A name given to the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85473">
                  <text>Casper College Challenge </text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="47">
              <name>Rights</name>
              <description>Information about rights held in and over the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85474">
                  <text>&lt;a href="http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/"&gt;http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/&lt;/a&gt;</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="41">
              <name>Description</name>
              <description>An account of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85475">
                  <text>This digital collection contains issues of Challenge, a publication of Casper College student writing from across the curriculum but outside of writing-specific courses. Issues of the publication date from 1987 to 1991 and 1993 to 1996.</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="51">
              <name>Type</name>
              <description>The nature or genre of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85476">
                  <text>Text</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="39">
              <name>Creator</name>
              <description>An entity primarily responsible for making the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85477">
                  <text>Casper College</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="44">
              <name>Language</name>
              <description>A language of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85478">
                  <text>ENG</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="43">
              <name>Identifier</name>
              <description>An unambiguous reference to the resource within a given context</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85479">
                  <text>CCA 04.ii.1996.01_Challenge</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="42">
              <name>Format</name>
              <description>The file format, physical medium, or dimensions of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85480">
                  <text>PDF</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
          </elementContainer>
        </elementSet>
      </elementSetContainer>
    </collection>
    <itemType itemTypeId="1">
      <name>Text</name>
      <description>A resource consisting primarily of words for reading. Examples include books, letters, dissertations, poems, newspapers, articles, archives of mailing lists. Note that facsimiles or images of texts are still of the genre Text.</description>
      <elementContainer>
        <element elementId="7">
          <name>Original Format</name>
          <description>The type of object, such as painting, sculpture, paper, photo, and additional data</description>
          <elementTextContainer>
            <elementText elementTextId="85540">
              <text>Print publication</text>
            </elementText>
          </elementTextContainer>
        </element>
      </elementContainer>
    </itemType>
    <elementSetContainer>
      <elementSet elementSetId="1">
        <name>Dublin Core</name>
        <description>The Dublin Core metadata element set is common to all Omeka records, including items, files, and collections. For more information see, http://dublincore.org/documents/dces/.</description>
        <elementContainer>
          <element elementId="50">
            <name>Title</name>
            <description>A name given to the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85530">
                <text>1991 Challenge</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="47">
            <name>Rights</name>
            <description>Information about rights held in and over the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85531">
                <text>&lt;a href="http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/"&gt;http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/&lt;/a&gt;</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="56">
            <name>Date Created</name>
            <description>Date of creation of the resource.</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85532">
                <text>1991</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="41">
            <name>Description</name>
            <description>An account of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85533">
                <text>1991 issue of Challenge, a publication of Casper College student writing from across the curriculum but outside of writing-specific courses.</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="51">
            <name>Type</name>
            <description>The nature or genre of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85534">
                <text>Text</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="39">
            <name>Creator</name>
            <description>An entity primarily responsible for making the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85535">
                <text>Casper College</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="44">
            <name>Language</name>
            <description>A language of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85536">
                <text>ENG</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="70">
            <name>Is Part Of</name>
            <description>A related resource in which the described resource is physically or logically included.</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85537">
                <text>Casper College Challenge, CCA 04.ii.1996.01 WyCaC US. Casper College Archives and Special Collections.</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="43">
            <name>Identifier</name>
            <description>An unambiguous reference to the resource within a given context</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85538">
                <text>CCA 04.ii.1996.01_Challenge_1991</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="42">
            <name>Format</name>
            <description>The file format, physical medium, or dimensions of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85539">
                <text>PDF</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
        </elementContainer>
      </elementSet>
    </elementSetContainer>
  </item>
  <item itemId="8010" public="1" featured="0">
    <fileContainer>
      <file fileId="8361">
        <src>https://caspercollege.cvlcollections.org/files/original/acf6edfd03cb410dd4dcdec0203f02e8.pdf</src>
        <authentication>e888e5fc0305f9b61ce395ad46552a77</authentication>
        <elementSetContainer>
          <elementSet elementSetId="4">
            <name>PDF Text</name>
            <description/>
            <elementContainer>
              <element elementId="92">
                <name>Text</name>
                <description/>
                <elementTextContainer>
                  <elementText elementTextId="85517">
                    <text>CASPER
\CASPIK CtUEBi

WYOMING^

Chulenbi

�Challenge-In every academic discipline, to study, to think,
to express clearly one's knowledge and understanding in suitable
written forms.

�Challenge
liv
Published at Casper Community College
Casper, Wyoming 82601
February 1 ‘»90
Copyright by Casper Community College

�Challenge: 1990
Table of Contents

Historical Adventures with Dr. Wolzgang
Centers and Civilizations

Michael Weiss

13

Teri M. Hutchinson...................................................................................................

16

.........................................

19

.....................................................

23

..........................................

24

................................................

25

Mary Carrick...............................

26

.....................

30

..................................................................................

33

Brian Murphy

Stacy Brown

Daniel Jordan Hand Buhn
Carol Ann Green.
A Critical Look at Massacre at Fall Creek

Food for Thought: The Images of Christina Rossetti

Response to James J. Kelly

Dusk Anderson

Cheryl Collums '

The Effect of Exclusive Language on Third Grade Children Joleen A. Borgerding
Speech Outlines

10

..................................................................

Origins of Chinese Medicine
Poems

5

................................................................

..................................................

Carol Bitzenhofer

A Psycho-Social Evaluation of Dracula
A Time for Change

Alison Briley

Julie Regan

Lois Bringham

............

....................

..................................................

Cover design executed by Eric Valdez

35
44
46

�Introduction
Casper College is pleased lo prcscnl the fourth issue of Challenge, a magazine lo honor
excellence. As a display medium for academic endeavor. Challenge solicits superior
examples of student writing from all college disciplines; our purpose is lo illustrate both
the breadth and depth of course work on our campus. Instructors have selected
representative writing from their courses, and, though wc do not include pieces from
writing classes, we encourage all forms: exams, reports, essays, term papers. This issue
represents work submitted in response lo the call for papers for two semesters, spring
1989 and fall 1989.
Arlene Larson, editor
Casper College
Casper, Wyoming
Spring, 1990

BPFCtAl COtLFCTONS
CASPCR COlitQE .-PSA»V

�Historical Adventures
with Dr. Wolzgang
By Alison Briley
Course: German Literature in Translation
Instructor: Paul Wolz
Assignment: Write a brief paper giving the reader insight into an author, a movement, or a work frwn German
literature. You may wish to compare authors, movements or works.

One bright, November day in German Literature,
my thoughts pulled rein from a lecture on
minnesingers, not to daydream about a few of my
favorite things like cherry cheesecake, curling up
next to a crackling fire with a good book, or even
shopping for new shoes. Instead, I had briefly
peeked at a pattern that seemed to recur in German
history. Even though my notion was only a
seedling of an idea, I was excited because I could
see its potential for a paper. I had not read much
about German history from the 2OO's to the 18(X)'s,
so I thought the ideas I was beginning to form were

original with me. A few lectures later, to my
chagrin, I learned that others, like Hegel, had
already talked about history progressing in ways
similar to lhe repeating patters I had discovered, so
I decided to discard my ideas for my paper.
However, when I explained my disappointment to
my German Literature professor, Herr Wolz, he
told me not to be discouraged and to go right ahead
with my idea for my paper. So I did! For fun and
for clarity, my argument will be explained by Dr.
Wolzgang, a fictitious character. Dr. Wolzgang, a
retired German Literature professor, has a wife.

5

�Hilda Wolzgang, who was also a icacher, and two
sons, both of whom arc home for Christmas break
from college. Dr. Wolzgang is dclighietl Christmas
evening after the festivities have subsided and his
two sons ask him to talk about motifs in German
history. Tickled pink. Dr. Wolzgang pours a
steamy mug of cocoa, settles deep into his favorite
overstuffed armchair, and takes a deep breath, all of
which indicate that he is willing to talk as long as
he has an attentive audience.
“Boys,” Dr. Wolzgang begins, “let me tell you
about a pattern that repeats itself in German history
from one period to the next. Each period has
political, religious, intellectual, social, or
ideological issues central to it. The issues a period
is preoccupied with change over time. These
changes are transitional rather than abrupt and arc
often a mixture of the preceding period's ideas and
the developing thoughts of the next period.
Whatever is going on in a preceding period is
usually a hint at what the people will react against
that will start the development of a new period.
The reactions, whether political, religious,
intellectual, social, or ideological, arc usually
encouraged by prominent figures and are reflected
in art or literature. The reactions often occur
because the ideas of the preceding period did not
answer pertinent questions that the people of that
age were concerned with. To demonstrate this
pattern that repeats itself, let's begin with the
Germanic age, cover the Medieval Age,
Reformation, Age of Reason, Enlightenment, Age
of Romance, and end with the Age of Realism.”
“Keep in mind,” Dr. Wolzgang continues, “these
periods, transitions, and reactions that result in a
new period arc not pure, structured, static
categories. Labels just help to clarify and give
some semblance of a beginning and end.”
Chuckling, Dr. Wolzgang reaches for a sugar
cookie and then continues, “Understanding the
pattern is a lot like trying to figure out your mother.
You know, sometimes I just can't understand some
of the things she docs and says. Most of the time,
however, I can, even enough to make some
predictions about how she will act. .. shhhhhhh . .

. I had better be quiet. I can see the door ajar to the
reading room where she i.s busy working on a
project.”
Returning his attention to his two sons. Dr.
Wolzgang comments, “Now, I don’t want to
intimidate you two, especially since you arc in
college now—and am I glad of that—but I think I
will briefly explain exactly what I will talk about
when I discuss each period, its transition, and what
happened to result in a new age. If I include
everything that could be Siiid, we would be here 'till
the morning sun shines and the cock crows. First, 1
will quickly describe the age I am talking about.
Then, I will discuss one question or one idea­
cither political, religious, intellectual, social, or
ideological—that was important during that age.
Even though there arc several examples of
prominent figures, works of art, or pieces of
literature that reflect the question or idea that I
choose to talk about, I will discuss only one.
Finally, I will describe the transition from that age
to the next, emphasizing that it is either a mutation,
reaction, mixture, foundation, or two or more of
these.”
Portraying the Germanic Age, Dr. Wolzgang
says, “Even though much of history for this period
has to be conjectured since it was not written down
at the time, it could still be described as brief,
nasty, and brutish. In short, barbarians had to be
good with a sword and a horse. To protect
themselves against other warring tribes, the
warriors, wearing leather armor and carrying long
swords, would ch(K)se a Ictidcr from among the best
fighters to lead them in times of war. People lived
in clans and governed themselves by customary
law. They could be described as pagan, concerned
with surviving, and especially impressed with
courage, honor, and hospitality, all ideologies
important to them. Remember when I had you two
read ‘The Lay of Hilderbrand’ when you were in
about the eighth grade? That work superbly
exemplifies barbaric warriors fighting with courage
and honor. Unfortunately, much of the literature
that reflects ideologies central to this age were
burned because they were considered pagan, or
6

�were jusl nol wrillen down since people were
illilerate.”
After consuming another sugar cookie. Dr.
Wolzgang continues, “Leaving the Germanic Age,
there is a definite mixing of characteristics from the
barbarians with those who will dominate that next
period, the High Middle Ages from 1000 to the
1400‘s. There arc hybrids of pagan with
Christianity and chivalry and warriors with knighLs.
The Lay of the Nihelengunlied, Germany’s first
long epic poem like England's Beowolf, has scenes,
themes, and characters that represent this mixing of
characteristics. For instance, Siegfried, one of the
central characters, is a chivalric knight while
Hagan, his enemy, is more like a barbarous warrior
from the Germanic Age.”
Describing the High Middle Ages, Dr. Wolzgang
speaks on, “The years from about 1000 to 14(K) are
called the High Middle Ages, and the period had
characteristics, like Christianity, courage, and
honor, that I hinted at when I described the mixing
transition from the Germanic Age. Now, these
characteristics, as well as several new ones, arc
dominant. I think it is easy to describe the people
of the period as ‘those who work,’ the peasants,
‘those who pray,’ the monks, and ‘those who fight,’
the nobility. The society of the nobles was held
together with bonds of personal loyally and
payments of homage and fealty while the peasants
paid the nobility in kind or in shares of crops in
return for protection. Much of Europe al this lime
was being ‘Christianized’ by traveling monks. This
description is brief, bul it is enough for our purpose
tonight. Now, I want to talk about a social and
religious ideal that was very imporiani lo mctlicval
peoples; that is chivalric knighthood. Knights were
usually Christians marked by honor, generosity,
courage, and courtesy, especially to women. The
knights esteemed minne, a courtly love that was
virtuous, innocent, and platonic.”
Grinning, Dr. Wolzgang commented, “Minne is
what I fell for your mother when I first laid cyc.s on
her eating a hot dog and drinking a milkshake in
the school cafeteria. I had dated several girls but
none of them compared lo your mom. From afar.

the whole next semester I admired her and
agonized over asking her for a dale. I am sure glad
I got the intestinal fortitude lo do so, because I
talked her into marrying me!” Dr. Wolzgang,
stacking the cards in his favor, paid his compliment
quite loudly, knowing full well the door was
cracked to the reading room where his wife
worked. He hoped his remarks would iinpres.s his
loving wife enough so that later when he requested
his favorite dutch apple pie, she would be glad lo
make it.
Eyes still twinkling. Dr. Wolzgang went on, “Von
Hagenau, a minnesinger, wrote poetry that reflects
the ideas that go along with courtly love and
chivalry in lines like these, ‘Even so, I try every’
day I serve her . . . she was a lady of upright life.’
Remember, in progressing from the Germanic Age
lo this period, I talked about mixing characteristics.
Instead, I will now give you an example of how
courtly love will mutate into sexual love. Contrast
Von Hagenau's line lo the more physical, sexual
themes in Vogelweide’s poem when he writes,
‘Under the lime-tree by the common, where we two
had our bed, you can find flowers and grass both
neatly picked; at the edge of the forest in the dell—
Did he kiss me ... I should think about a thousand
limes. See how red my mouth is
Sitting closer on the edge of his chair, his checks
slightly flushed. Dr. Wolzgang encourages his sons
lo refill their glasses and their tummies. When they
return he also feels refreshed and is raring to
proceed. “Now, that Likes us lo the Reformation in
Germany, from about the 1400's lo the 160()'s,
which is synonymous to the Renaissance that is
going on in other parts of Europe. During this
period, there is the development and rise of a
middle class called 'the burgers,' a diminishing of
communal ideas and feudalism, a rejection of
Church dogma and tradition, the rise of secularism,
individualism, and humanism, as well as more
money and more time which encouraged all these
plus the age of crafts. A question that was of great
concern, and dealt with extensively by Marlin
Lulher, was that of the relationship between faith
and works. Martin Luther was also an important
7

�figure because his iranslaiion of lhe Lalin Vulgate
into German, along with lhe invcniion of
Guttenberg's moveable type, encouraged literacy,
questioning Catholic tradition, and a consolidation
of one German language. So far I have talked
about a hybrid of characteristics and a mutation.
Now, I would like to talk about a reaction and a
foundation. Many of the things I described that
were going on in lhe Reformation were a strong
reaction to what had been going on during the Dark
Ages. Not only are they a reaction though, but they
are also a foundation for the Age of Reason and for
lhe Enlightenment.”
Going on. Dr. Wolzgang describes the Age of
Reason claiming, "The age, also known as
absolutism or rationalism, is a reaction to the
impact of the science revolution and lhe church’s
telling people what to do and what to think. The
ideology central to the age is: Man can reason for
himself. The ideas of lhe lime were influenced by
philosophers like John Locke who extensively
discussed society over nature.”
Proceeding to lhe Enlightenment, Dr. Wolzgang
says, “Remember earlier that I said lhe
Reformation was laying a foundation for the next
two ages. Well, it did, along ^iih the Age of
Reason. The Enlightenment, an inheritance of
these two ages, is permeated with social and
intellectual thoughts of individualism and
progressivism. Probably lhe most important figure
of this lime would be Lessing, who is considered
lhe father of modern German literature. He ushers
in the Golden Age of Literature and persuades
Germans to borrow writing styles from the English
and not lhe French since both languages have lhe
same origin. After Lessing there is a lot more
writing going on, especially didactic and polar, so it
will be harder to narrow my choice down to one
example.” Winking at his two sons. Dr. Wolzgang
laughingly reassures them he will try to keep
everything simple still.
Continuing, Dr. Wolzgang remarks, “The
Romantic Age, around the 1800's, is a vehement
rebellion against reasoning and rationalism. Many
claimed that human beings were also sensitive and

emotional. Goethe was a master at lyrical p(x;lry,
verse with or without form, that created strong
feeling and emotion in a reader. You boys had
mentioned in one of your letters that Faust was one
of your favorite books that you read this semester.
Didn't some of lhe passages sweep you away
emotionally because they were so fluid and
rhythmic?”
“Well, boys,” Dr. Wolzgang exclaims, "we have
progressed from the Germanic Age to the Age of
Realism.
There was an outcry against
Romanticism now. People were saying that life is
not all feeling, rather there is reality too.
Romanticism had not answered all their questions
and problems, and one could look around al life
and sec that much of life was sad, hard, and very
unromantic. Heinrich Heine wrote poems that
exemplify ihe transition from the Age of Romance
to this realistic period. For instance, in his poem
‘The Lorelei’ Heine creates the romantic feeling
and image in its beginning but at lhe end bursts the
bubble with reality when the young boatman dies.
This is reality, he was saying, just as many of lhe
people were claiming.”
Getting that mischlevious twinkle in his eye
again. Dr. Wolzgang says, “Reminds me of your
mom and me after we were married. We both had
glowing expectations, fond hopes, and romantic
ideas about how life would l)c on the other side of
‘I do.’ Within lhe first twenty four hours, to my
horror, your mother had loaded the dishwasher
wrong. She had not taken advantage of every ncxik
and cranny, and even worse she had loaded the
cups facing north and south rather than cast and
west. Then, to add insult lo injury, when I pulled
open my dresser drawers to gel a pair of socks,
your mother had rolled my socks up into light, little
wads that looked like balls of yam, instead of just
tucking lhe two lops of the socks together so they
do not lose their shape. Now, to be fair lo your
mom, I will tell you one of her horror stories about
me, that is if I can remember one. Oh yes, how
could I ever forget the lime she came huffing and
puffing out of the bathroom accusing me of putting
lhe toilet paper on backward. I wa.s aghasl--I had

8

�never considered there being a right or wrong way
to replenish toilet paper. I revealed this thought to
your mom, and for the next twenty minutes she
gave me a lengthy, detailed dissertation on how to
correctly load the dumb apparatus next time. So,
much like the realists, your mom and I both
realized that life is not always peaches and cream.”
Dr. Wolzgang had told these stories to his two sons
in a quiet voice, rather than his regular booming
one, so that he would not upset Hilda. He wanted
her to have the compliment he had made earlier in
the evening to be ringing in her ears so he would
get his dutch apple pie.
His voice raised again, Dr. Wolzgang wrapped up
his explanation. “Well, boys, that is a brief
description of a pattern that seems to occur in
German history from the Germanic Age to the Age
of Realism. 1 could continue these themes right up
until the 198()’s, and I could go into much more
detail, but I think that you both could sec the motif.
Just remember that the periods arc not static,
confined times, but are rather fluid and changing.
Each new age occurred after transitions that had
mutations, mixtures, foundations, or reactions or a
combination of these that culminated in the new
age. One last interesting reminder is to note that
reactions often occurred because the ideas of a
particular age could not solve immediate problems
or questions. For instance, the Romantics saw that
people had emotions and were not all rationale.

Furthermore, Germany was politically concerned
with serious issues of reunification. Because of
these two ideas, people were forced by reality to
admit that life had problems and was not always
romantic and emotional. So, it seems that Realism
then went to an extreme, based on the emerging
ideas of Darwin and heredity. However, these ideii.s
could not solve all their problems cither. Anyway I
am getting kind of deep and off the subject. What
do you know? It is twelve o'clock already, so I had
better hand this paper back over to Alison.”
Dr, Wolzgang's comments are intriguing to
contemplate and fascinating to play with because
they exemplify the intricate, detailed explanations
that go into explaining events in human history. By
writing this paper, I could greatly appreciate this. I
could also start to see that history can be looked at
as a whole and not just fragmented pieces of
information. In other words, I synthesized a lol of
small bits of information—Do you think Bloom
would give me a pal on the back? Finally, I was
excited to learn that Hegel had talked about ideas
similar to mine. However, his ideas, applied by
Marx to communism, said that history's thesis and
antithesis would synthesize in the ideal slate-communism. As we arc seeing now, this did not
happen. As a Christian, I do not think there will be
a perfect synthesis of patterns in history, unless it is
Heaven!

9

�Centers and Civilizations
By Carol Bitzenhofer
Course: Philosophical Issues
Instructor: Dr. Robert K. Carlson
Assignment: I-or this exam, write an essay in which you discuss the following quotation as it applies to three
books we studied this semester, each of which represents one of the three philosophical views of Iivc---pagan,
medieval and modem: “While Pagan and Medieval man had a 'center' to their lives, Mtxlem man has lost the
center in his life. This has resulted in the fragmentation of life for Modem man on all levels: religious, moral,
political, and so forth, which leads to anxiety, despair and the general feeling that life is meaningless and
absurd."

“While pagan and medieval man had a ‘center’
to their lives, modern man has lost the center in his
life. This has resulted in the fragmentation of life
for modern man on all levels: religious, moral,
political, and so forth, which leads to anxiety,
despair and the general feeling that life is
meaningless and absurd.” Particular cultures have
certain ways of looking at things, certain attitudes
in common as regards how and why the universe is.
These altitudes affect all spheres of human life and,

unless intervention occurs, are self perpetuating.
Consciously or not we are each of us products of
our particular cultural environments and these
environments vary by design or its lack. As Hilaire
Bollock says, "The whole of a human group is
given its savor and character by the spirit which
thus inhabits it." So it is necessary to define the
"spirit" centering pagan and medieval man before
describing the loss of values al ihc heart of mrxlcrn
culture.

10

�I. The Pagan Center
“Without the gods
a man or city can do nothing.
Only God knows everything, and man
suffers for what he dews.” {Simonides,
Accomplishments, 11. 1-4)
“they are not dead, for their courage raises them in
glory
from the rooms of Hell.” (Simonides, On the
Lakedaimonians Fallen at Flataia, 11.4-8)

and men were out of joint. Gods represented a
power incomprehensible, unattainable and often
inimical to humans. Juno's unabated fury toward
Aeneas was not reasonable. And god of gods,
ruling all implacably, was a cruel and alien fate
with values indifferent to particular men. Thu.s
gods and men tracked parallel destinies without a
common point upon which everyman might meet
and reconcile a harmoniously eternal existence with
his gods. Aeneas' progeny suffered this "doubtful
doom" through the time of heroes, kings, and
emperors to the dying of Jove's promise to Venus.
Then Rome, decadent, moribund and desperate
from a thousand years of corruption and habit,
found only annihilation on its spiritual horizon.

Socrates said that “man is a rational animal” and
upon this premise pagan culture centered its highest
virtue. Pursuit of knowledge txjcame paramount
and its mastery the celebration and crowning glory
of the pagan world. But what is reason precisely?
It “has to do with finding the ground of being and
the fundamental structuring of order in the universe
. .. and of course what destroys reason is passion.”
(Campbell, The Power of Myth, pp. 28-29). Thus
certain ancients, while mastering passion, put their
minds to work on the world and ordered a great
civilization. Men like Aeneas, who was facing
seven years of chaotic seas, nightmare monsters
and awful omens or burning with Dido’.s love "in a
furnace of desire" or walking “Pluto's realm” to see
his “dear posterity,” could have finally surrendered
to fear, passion or weariness but did not. Aeneas
and others like him who engineered pagan
civilization had an overriding purpose to which
they were totally committed and which they faced
with a courage and fortitude undaunted by suffering
or death. Aeneas' destiny, “the site of his city, and
safe harboring/For his gods in Lalium,” centered
him, enabled him to master his emotions and order
his environment, and made him great. He
demonstrated the essence of Greek heroism, the
pursuit of honor through excellent action both
physically and menially. But as Rome's founder,
Aeneas molded this heroism into the Roman sense
of duly, “there is the fatherland that 1 must love,”
and thereby earned his fame.
But if man attains his highest nature when ruled
by reason, the gods need follow no such rule.
Though gods were created in man's image, god.s

II. The Medieval Center
“Death be not proud, though some have called ihcc
Mighty and dreadful, for thou art not so;
For those who thou think'st thou dost overthrow
Die not, poor Death, nor yet canst thou kill me.
(Donne, Divine Ptxjms, Sonnet 10, 1-4)
Mankind despaired al the end of pagan
civilization when suddenly revelation graced its dry
rationality. Christ came, God/man and the Way by
which all people could find a home with Divinity.
The fleeting fame of a select few was replaced with
a great promise for “Everyman” who chose a life
enacted upon faith. Sure hope and purpose
flowered since one could reconcile with God.
Indeed the true purpose of any life was Its
participation in God's life after bodily death. Thus
one’s actions should be ordered to effect that end.
Man herein found the essential and absolute center
about which all revolves. He found God benign,
accepting and In perfect accord with his essential
self, his soul. Thus thirty odd pilgrims gathered a
spring evening at the Tabard Inn in Southwark. A
motley group from life's three estates, bound by a
faith centered upon and ordered to a common end.
Chaucer's pilgrimage to the shrine of Thomas a
Becket metaphorically symbolized man's journey
from birth through death to the bciilific vision for
those who by active faith merited eternal bliss.

11

�Thus a prioress “full syinple and coy” tolerated an
unbearable vulgar miller with “mouth as greet was
as a greet fomeys,” and a friar calling a summoncr
“Leeve brother with a feend” was “quiled” by a
summoner's rejoinder that “Out of the dcvcis ers
thcr gonne dryve/ Twenty thousand freer in route”
rather than the dissolution of their common
purpose. Quite simply their goal was absolute and
greater than any one of them. It was a healing of
their myriad sins and imperfections so that they
would attain true happiness in God.

immediate gratification, less his will, his reason, his
feeling, in a word meaningless. Mcursault has no
connection with others:
“Marie ... asked me if I wanted to marry her.
I said it didn't make any difference to me”
or, “I explained to him, however, that my
nature was such that my physical needs
often got in the way of my feelings. The
day I buried Maman, I was very tired”
or about his murder of the Arab, “I had
never been able to truly feel remorse for
anything. My mind was always on what
wa,s coining next.”
He has no connections with his self:
“for the first time in months, I distinctly
heard the sound of my own voice. I
recognized it as ihc same one that had been
ringing in my cars for many long days”
or al his trial, “I had the odd impression of
being watched by myself.”
He exists without meaning or purpose in a world
where “familiar paths traced in summer skies could
lead as easily lo prison as to the sleep of the
innocent,” a world of absurdities.
If we arc the “hollow men,” we are also ihc
anxious. We look around for a grounding in solid
values and everywhere the sands shift beneath our
feel. Sometimes a glimmer upon the horizon
promises some new answer, some Jim Jones or
scientific panacea but it's “just a form shimmering
before (our) eyes in the fircy air,” just a searing
sterility invading our human souls. Then we
despair because we know that “the emptiness of a
man's heart becomes ... an abyss threatening to
swallow up society.” Perhaps it is loo late, maybe
the “bell lolls” for our species as a whole; perhaps
we have failed our God as husbandmen of lhe
world driven by arrogance and the desire lo
dominate and so deserve our fate. We can only
hope in our fevered twilight hours that we come lo
our senses as Dante did when in his “gloomy wood,
astray” and rediscover our connections lo each
other, our planet and our God. I for one believe
this possible.

III. Modem Alienation
“Turning and turning in the widening gyre
The falcon cannot hear the falconer:
Things fall apart; the center cannot hold;
Mere anarchy is loosed upon the world,
The blood-dimmed tide is looscd^nd everywhere
The ceremony of innocence is drowned;
(Yeats, The Second Coming, 11. 1-6)
Something perverse occurred in the seventeenth
century. God through a process of scientific
reductionism was stripped of all qualities, reduced
to the quantitative and measurable, transformed
into a “mechanical philosophy.” Fact and value
split and fact became mistakenly confused as the
measure of value. Humans became observers
rather than participants in their own experiences,
resulting in a deep fragmentation of psychic
integrity. As Morris Berman says in The
Reenchanlmenl Of the World, "Scientific
consciousness is alienated consciousness . . .
Subject and object arc always seen in opposition ...
I am not my experiences, and thus not really a part
of the world around me. The logical end point of
this world view i.s a feeling of total reification:
everything is an object, alien not-me; and I am
ultimately an object loo, an alienated 'thing' in a
world of other, equally meaningless things” (p. 3).
So man becomes a race of Meursaulls existing on a
level devoid of his God, his reason, his passions,
existing only in the fact that he is now sleepy or
hungry or horny, not existing beyond this
12

�A Psycho-Social Evaluation
of Dracula
By Michael Weiss
Course: Child Psychology
Instruclor: Dr. Ruth Doyle

This paper was a final exam in response to these directions: Write your own test question about a child or
person and answer the question in an articulate manner, citing examples from the text by page to substantiate
your answer. It is necessary to cite support of the answer with examples from different parts of the text to
exhibit your familiarity and use of the text. Also make reference to the two charts you developed in class.

raided, murdered and pillaged in many of the
villages in the area. From 1443 till 1448 Dracula
and his younger brother, Radu, were imprisoned as
hostages by the Ottoman Empire. During this lime
Dracula was known for torturing small animals that
hi.s guards would bring him. In 1447, his father and
older brother were killed by assassins and in 1448
Dracula began his first of three reigns.
In the next 25 years, until hi.s death in 1476,
Dracula developed a reputation for extreme cruelty.

Vlad Tepes, also known as Dracula, was born in
Sighisoara, Transylvania, now part of Romania, in
1431 (McNally and Florescu, 1972). His father
was Prince of Wallachia, also part of present day
Romania. Almost nothing is known about
Dracula's mother. Dracula spent his early life being
trained in the military arts. In 1438, Dracula, his
father, and his older brother accompanied Sultan
Murad, a Turkish ruler in an expedition across
Transylvania. Along the way, the expedition

13

�In one episode, he had 20,000 Turkish prisoners
impaled while he and his henchmen dined amid
them. He was married twice; his first wife
committing suicide in 1462. He also had several
mistresses, of whom al least two he had killcxl and
mutilated for being unfaithful. During hi.s three
reigns, it is estimated that he had over 100,000
people killed. He was extremely vain and often
had people killed for the slightest imagined insult.
Dracula could also be very generous to those to
whom he look a liking. He gave many gifts to
those who pleased him. He was a very capable
military leader, defeating larger invading forces
several limes in his career. He was also responsible
for ihc conslruclion of many monasteries and
churches. Dracula had such an impact in
Transylvania that Brain Stoker decided to use him
as his vampire in his novel, written 400 years later.

begins Concrete Operations. This means lhal
Dracula was beginning lo understand logic as he
watched people being killed for little or no reason.
This is also an age lhal one Icarn.s to understand
other people's feelings (Text, p. 391). All this
means lhal, al an age when modern children are
learning lo read, Dracula was watching people
being killed and learning from that experience.
The second significant event that shaped
Dracula's life happened when he was twelve. Al
this time, he and his brother were taken as hosutges
by the Ottoman Empire. While adolescence was
not considered a distinct stage of life by most
traditional societies (Text, p.43O), it could still be
considered a major time of change by most
developmental theories. According to Piaget, this
is the lime when one begins abstract operations
(C.P. chart). This would mean lhal while
imprisoned, Dracula was attaining abstract and
detluctive reasoning. Piaget argues lhal the shift lo
abstract “formal” levels of thought has some very
profound implications on an adolescent's emotional
life (Text, p.457). This means lhal al a lime when
Dracula was advancing to a higher level of
reasoning, he was in a situation where his life could
end al any moment. Il is little wonder lhal he
would consider life a cheap commodity.

The Question
Using the text and the charts, outline the life of
Dracula from childhood to death.

Major Events In His Life
When looking al the life of Dracula, one needs to
remember that he grew up in an age and culture
completely different from our own. However, if
the theories lhal we studied in class are truly
universal, one should be able to apply them lo
anybody, from any age or culture.
While very little is known about Dracula’s
childhood, there is one event lhal has been recorded
and probably had a major influence on his life. At
age seven, he was part of an expedition lhal
murdered, burned and pillaged its way across
Transylvania. Age seven is a critical age.
Considered the delicate year (C.P. chart), it is a year
in which one has a great deal of intellectual growth.
It is also when one, according to Havighurst (C.P.
chart), starts developing a conscience, morality and
values. It is an age that many cultures treat
children as small adults (Text, p. 357). This is the
lime lhal, according to Piaget (C.P. chart), a child

The Theories
When one examines Dracula's life using
Kolberg's Moral Theory, it is obviou.s that he did
not advance higher than level two: personal needs
and satisfaction. To Dracula, life wa.s short and
worth very little. He didn't worry about
conforming lo any set of rules, other than taking
care of his own needs first. While it could be
argued that this was a particularly violent era, it
should also be poinictl out lhal the same culture and
era prorluccd Marlin Luther, St. Thomas Aquinas
and many others who achieved cither level five or
six of Kohberg's theory.
To examine Dracula’s life with Piaget’s theory,
one needs to remember that, as mentioned earlier,
some significant events in his life happened at ages

14

�Piagcl fell were very important, llial these events
happened while Dracula was achieving concrete
and formal operations may have had major effects
on how he lived his life. One would assume that,
because of Dracula’s demonstrated ability as a
military commander and the creative forms of
torture and death that he administered, he had a
fairly high level of intelligence.
Erikson might have found Dracula of particular
interest. While we know nothing of Dracula's early
life, it is obvious that during Erikson's first stage,
Trust versus Mistrust, he wa.s left distrustful of
others for the rest of his life. On level two.
Autonomy versus Shame, it i.s likely that Dracula
never was allowed to gain any self-esteem. This
can be surmised by his treatment of others as an
adult. When Dracula reached level three. Initiative
versus Guilt, it is obviou.s that he never developed
any kind of conscience. When Dracula reached
level four. Accomplishment versus Inferiority, he
was probably able to achieve some level of
accomplishment, if for no other reason than he
found he was very good al death. In the next stage,
Identity versus Role Confusion. Dracula achieved a
sense of who he was. Unfortunately, the identity he
chose was that of a monster. When going through
the next level, Intimacy versus Isolation, it is
doubtful that he was able to have a intimate
relationship with anyone. This can be substantiated
by his relationship with both of his wives and his
numerous mistresses. Il would be difficult to guess

where Dracula ended up on Erikson's theory
because of the violent way he lived and died;
however, it is doubtful dial he was able to die with
any integrity.
To examine Dracula's life using Maslow's theory,
one could assume that most of his life was spent
attempting to fulfill basic needs. It is doubtful that
he was ever in a position to achieve any of the
higher levels, because he never had any kind of
security in his life.

Conclusions
Dracula was not a nice person (this was written
with longue firmly in check). He was responsible
for terrorizing, torturing and killing a very large
number of people. However, one is able to
understand to a certain extent why he was what he
was.
I chose this subject for two reasons. First, if the
theories that wc were taught are valid, I should be
able to apply them to anyone. What this means i.s
that ihc question tests both myself and the course.
Since I was able to apply the theories to a person
who was a complete monster and was born 500
years ago in a completely different culture, I can
assume that the theories can be applied to just
about anyone. This means that the information
presented is valuable and something I can use.
Second, if 1 was able to apply the theories properly,
then I did my part in the learning process.

References
Skolntck, Arlene S. (1986). The Psychology of Human Development. Orlando. Florida: llarcoun Brace

Javonovich

McNally. R.T. and Florescu, R. (1972). In Search of Dracula. New York: Galahad Books.

15

�A Time for Change
By Teri M. Hutchinson
Course: American Literature I
Instructor: Carolyn Logan
The assignmenl was to read one of the authors in an assigned bibliography, then write a paper to consider the
following questions: Should this writer—because of her ideas or her skill as a writer—lx; included in the canon of
American literature? Should students of literature be as familiar with this writer as with writers usually
anthologized, writers usually considered the mainstays of American writing? What dimension docs this writer add
to our study of American literature? Do you recommend that we read the author you chose? Why or why rtol?

Women have for loo long been ignored as
credible historians, philosophers, intellcctualists
and writers. It is lime for this to change. Mercy
Olis Warren's “History of the Rise, Progress and
Termination of the American Revolution” should
be included in the study of American literature
because of her style and because of the book's
content. Under the heading of style, I will discuss
sentence structure, metaphors, diction and a
recurring theme. As I consider content, I will
include the author's credibility and the book's

historical value.
Warren poetically crafts sentences to lighten the
factual tone of her story and provide a little ironic
emphasis. “It is there the choicest flowers of fame
may be culled to crown the memory of Wolfe and
Montgomery” (267). Here she combines
alliteration and rhyme. “The .splendor of diadem,
the purple of princes or the pride of power” (178) is
another sentence Warren crafts for sound. One
example of ironic emphasis is “it may be proper to
observe that general Arnold extricated himself in a
16

�remarkable manner ... and lived to be distinguished
through the American war. for his bravery and
address, hi.s activity, and his villany” (271). After
building up this war hero, she ends a sentence and a
chapter with “and his villany.” We all know of the
fate of Benedict Arnold.
Warren's metaphors arc simple and she uses them
sparingly as a device to illustrate particular points.
One point Warren brings up is that not all
Americans in the eighteenth century wanted to
completely break with England. “The seeds of
separation were sown” (176) and “independence
was a plant of of later growth” (54) arc two way.s
she metaphorically illustrates this idea. She
describes America as “the dutiful child” (302) of
Britain and a thought flashes in my mind-children
eventually grow up and move out! The key here is
“eventually.” Warren also refers to America as
being “in the infancy of emancipation” (300),
furthering the idea that America, al this lime, i.s
only a child growing steadily toward independence.
1 think there is a gross misconception on the part of
many young people that Independence was a
Glorious Revelation suddenly manifested in 1776.
With a few clever metaphors, Warren shows this
not to be the case.
Warren's book, as do all history books, contains
some bias and a persuasive lone that I see
evidenced particularly in her diction. Warren
obviously despises power and wealth because of its
“intoxicating nature” (230). “The moral sense (is)
weakened by the sudden acquisition of wealth and
power (and) humanity is obscured” (2). Whenever
she gets on the subject of power, “tyranny,” “lust,”
“arbitrary,” “ruin,” and “depredation” appear. She
calls those in power, particularly the English,
“obnoxious characters” (96), “evil” (66), “useless
persons” (286) and “barbarous strangers” (283).
She calls Americans the “prey” (39) of the British
Parliament and “slaves of arbitrary power” (177).
One last incident I would like to mention i.s
Warren's description of a man who tells Governor
Hutchinson of a secret meeting of the currently
outlawed House of Rcprescnlaiives in Boston.
Warren deems this man a “sycophant” (137)—not a

“spy,” not an “informant, but rather an “ass-kisser.”
The most prevalent characteristic of Warren’s
style is her use of a recurring theme.
The love of domination and an uncontrolled
lust for arbitrary power have been equally
conspicuous in the decline of Roman virtue,
and the dark pages of British sloy. Il was these
principles that overturned that ancient republic.
It was these principles that frequently involved
England in civil feuds. Il was the rcsisuincc to
them that broul one of their monarchs to the
block, and struck another from his throne. It
was the prevalence of them that drove the first
settlers from elegant habitations... to the cold,
uncultivated western world (5).
In my notes 1 have a list of over 40 page numbers
that include pan of this idea of the oppression of
individual freedom and human rights. On the
majority of these pages her language i.s parallel,
such as: watchful guardians of American freedom
(37) and “the vigilant guardians of the rights of
man” (99), “the rightrs of human nature” (4), “the
hereditary love of freedom” (41) and “the spirit of
freedom” persuasive device. With it, she is
presenting and proving that the American
revolution occurred because Americans were
subject to arbitrary power and that the nature of
humans is to be free and self-sovereign. I think her
theory is based on a philosophical perspective that
people can be oppressed and ignored only for so
long. There will come a time when upheaval and
change arc the only aliemalive. The first patriots
were “armed in the cause of justice” (185) fighting
for “privileges they considered as grants from
heaven” (229).
I think Warren's sentence structures, metaphors,
diction and use of recurring theme effectively craft
a persuasive argument for the individual freedom of
humans a.s the cause of the American revolution. I
did not, in this volume, find a significant mention
of the French involvement in America's eventual
rupture with England. The French government,
whose support the colonists desperately needed, put
a condition on their military and financial aid—
America had to formally declare independence. Il
17

�is now documented fact that al the same lime
Franklin, John Adams, Patrick Henry, Governor
Jefferson was drafting the Declaration of Hutchinson and John Hancock. Warren had access
Independence, Brikiin sent a peace commission to to an incredible diversity of information and
America with plans of offering them everything desired no political advantage in writing herstory
they wanted except independence. The crux of all
and is a credible author.
this is that Warren chose certain events and
Next, when considering content for historical
described them in such a way as to support her own
value, I am obliged to mention three aspects of the
opinions. She constructs herstory very well
revolution that Warren brings to the surface. First,
because although she leaves out some things, she
the notion that all Americans were eager for war
brings to light new circumstances that give me and independence is wrong. “From the beginning
fresh insight to history. This leads me to the of the grand contest, the lamp of liberty had not
second reason why I believe this book should be
burnt so brightly in New York, New Jersey and
included in the study of American literature: The
Pennsylvania” (301). There were the “timid. .
author's credibility and the book's hcrslorical value.
.lovers of case” who were afraid of the “ravages of
“Connected by nature, friendship, and every
war” (301). These people also argued against a
social tie with many of the first patrioLs. . .on die standing army for reasons I now can grasp after
continent.. .and with several gentleman abroad... I
reading this herstory. Second, the British,
had the best means of information” (iii).
specifically Colonel Johnson, attempted to motivate
This is how Warren, very early on, establishes
Indian involvement by inviting them “to drink the
herself as credible. She “neither hopes nor fears,
blood and feast on the body of any Bostonian”
nor has any interest in, the success or failure of any
(251). Third and most interesting, the British also
party” (v). She later writes that “truth requires a “had the inhumanity to offer freedom to any Black
just portrait” (78). Several times while reading this slave” (201) that would rise up and kill their
book I found myself wondering how she could master.
have known all these details and intimacies about
I believe that Mercy Olis Warren’s “History of the
people’s actions and characters. I was answered
Rise, Progress and Termination of the American
lime and again by her footnotes and references to Revolution" should be included in the anthologies
the appendix. Often the footnotes would read “this of Traditional American Literature because of her
information was verbally transcribed to the author.”
style, including sentence structure, metaphors,
Also in the footnotes she cited various sources such
diction and a recurring image and because of
as the “British Annual Register,” pamphlets, content, including the author’s credibility and the
journals. Congressional and Parliamentary records
new hcrslorical insights she provides.
and actual letters and conversations with Ben

Work Cited
Warren. Mcr^ Otis. The History of the Rise. Progress and Termination

18

the American Revolutian. Boston: Manning and Ix)ring,

�Origins of Chinese Medicine
By Brian Murphy
Course: Seminar in the /lumanilies
Instructor: Marianne North
Assignmenl; To write a five to lai page research paper on a topic related to the theme of the 1989 I lumanilies
Festival; Nonwestem Influences on Western Thought.

Many areas of our cullure have been influenced
by nonwcslern cultures. Numerous ideas and
inventions have their origins in foreign countries.
Art, literature, music, and religion are only a few
areas that influence our country. Another area
which has been affected by foreign countries is the
field of medicine, and a country which has greatly
influenced medicine's growth is China.
An important contribution China has given the
rest of the world is the use of acupuncture to treat
sickness and disease. Acupuncture has recently
grown in popularity in America and is not much
different than when it was first developed.
According to one writer, "the tradition of
acupuncture is based on the belief that life forces

flow through the human body and disease results
when the forces become out of balance" (Lasagna
101). Acupuncture involves "the insertion of
needles of various materials and shapes into
particular points of the body" (Lasagna 103). The
needles were usually made of steel, the same
material used in acupuncture today. The process of
acupuncture is said to bring relief from various
problems such as back pain, asthma, and
headaches. Skeptics of acupuncture believe the
technique is "unscientific." In contrast, Dr. T.
Nakayama writes:
Is it possible to consider ancient Chinese
medicine as a real science? This is a
troublesome question. To the modems, indeed.

19

�there seems nothing scientific about it. On the
contrary, it is covered with a prehistoric mystic
patina, and sometimes appears to be scarcely
comprehensible. Nevertheless, when one is
aware of its great therapeutic efficacity, one
cannot deny its value. (Nakayama!)
Today, acupuncture is used in Asia as well as many
European countries, and its popularity is growing
throughout the world.
Another Chinese contribution includes the use of
herbs for curing sickness. The Chinese believed
herbs contained magical ingredients that helped
sick people regain their health (Dimond 37). A
popular herb people used was called ginseng.
Westerners began to us ginseng to improve their
health.
The Chinese believe herbs can cure almost any
type of sickness. As a matter of fact, most doctors
in China use herbs instead of drugs for treatment.
Nakayama writes, "When the body is afflicted and
in distress, disease arises. In order to cure this, one
applies every kind of herbal medicine" (Nakayama
14).
The manner in which these medicines were
prepared is also interesting. The Chinese believed
in order to free the food of ail evil, it must first be
steamed. Harold Parkers writes, "One must first
use paddy rice and steam it. The stalks of the rice
serve as fire wood. When the steaming of the rice
is completed, the rice is very strong" (Parkers 59).
Along with herbs, the Chinese people believed
different types of foods had various effects on
different parts of the body. These foods were
categorized into four basic groups which included:
The five grains act as nourishment. These
grains arc wheat, millet, rice and beans. Next,
the five tree-fruits which serve to augment the
nourishment. These are chestnuts, dates,
plums, peaches, and apricots. The five
domestic animals contribute additional
nutritional benefit. These are fowl, sheep,
horses, pigs, and beef. The last group arc the
five vegetables which complete nutrition.
They consist of leeks, onions, greens, mallows,
and scallions. (Dimon 67)
20

A very important contribution the Chinese have
given to the western world is massage therapy as a
treatment for sickness. At one time, many Chinese
people suffered from a type of sickness that was
curable through massage techniques and relaxation.
Parkers writes, "Their diseases are many: they
suffer from complete paralysis and chills and fever.
These diseases are most fittingly treated with
breathing exercises, massage of the skin, and
exercises of hands and feet" (Parkers 34). He goes
on to say, "The ancient sages combined these
various treatments for the purpose of cure, and each
patient received the treatment tliat was most filling
for him" (Parkers 35).
The Chinese also began the practice of reviving a
person who has suffered from a heart attack.
Nakayama writes, "When the body is frequently
startled and frightened, the circulation in the
arteries and the veins ceases, and disease arises. In
order to cure this, one uses massage" (Nakayama
211).
The Chinese believed people were cured by
pushing evil spirits out of the muscle. Nakayama
also writes, "One should attack the sick pan and
allow it to swell, one should pull it and make it
subside, one should distribute it and get hold of the
evil" (Nakayama 224).
In modern medicine, we use similar massage
techniques but we understand belter the reason why
massage helps patients. In the same way as the
Chinese massaged patients, doctors use massage
techniques to improve circulation, and to help the
internal organs to relax and function better.
The methods of giving a massage and relaxing
the body have not changed much cither. By
striking certain parts of the body, the Chinese
learned about muscular anatomy and the function
of different muscle parts. This helped doctors later
on better to understand various muscle groups and
how they are arranged and function.
Through the help of the Chinese, medicine has
improved. The techniques used long ago in China
are still being practiced all over the world. Because
of the Chinese, there arc more lives being saved
through the contributions they have given us.

�Works Cited
Dimon, Grey E. More Than Herbs and Acupuncture. New York: Norton and Company, 1975.
Lasagna, David. The Body. New York: Barnes and NoWc, Inc.. 1978.
Nakayama, T. Acupuncture el Medecine Chinoise Verifees au Fapon. Paris: Argus Publishers. 1969.

Parkers. Harold. The World Book Encyclopedia. 20v(A&amp;.ficwYoiii: World Book-Childcraft International, 1982. 34-35.

21

�Poems
Course: Spanish Composition and Conversation I
Instructor: Lynda Durham
Assignment: exercise in writing poetry in Spanish, with an English translation.

22

�Una Visia de Toledo
La lierra oro, verde y morcna.
El ciclo gris y bianco,
los nubes sc esian arremolinando.
Los lorreoncs del Alcazar
pcnclran cn cl ciclo.
Las murallas imprcsionanies y impenetrables.
Los colorcs de los wlificios pequefios
rodcando El Alcazar casan bien
con los colorcs de la lierra.
La vista de un puenlc.

,

By Carmen
(Stacy Brown)

A View of Toledo
The gold, green and brown land.
The gray and white sky,
lhe clouds are swirling.
The towers of lhe Alcazar
penetrate lhe sky.
The walls impressive and forbidding.
The colors of lhe small buildings
surrounding the Alcazar match well
with the colors of the land.
The view from a bridge.

23

�Untitled
Y como vi los dragones remoniandosc y volando cn circulos cn cl vicnio de
la manafla, mi corazon palpilando junlo a ellos con alegn'a, una alcgria de
satisfaccion que era como el dolor. Su bcllcza estaba hecha de terrible
fuerza, un salvajismo total y la gracia de la razon. Ya que son criaturas que
podian pensar, con lenguaje y anliguas sabidun'as. En los palrones de vuelos
habfa un feroz complacente coordinacion.

Yo no habia dicho, pero pens6, no me inieresa Io que venga despuds; yo
habfa visto los dragones en el viento de la manada.
By Daniel Jordan Hand Buhn

And as I saw the dragons soaring and circling in the morning wind, my heart
leapt with them, with a joy, a joy of fulfillment that was like pain. Their
beauty was made up of terrible strength, utter wildness and the grace of
reason. For these were the thinking creatures, with speech and ancient
wisdom. In the patterns of their flight was a fierce willed concord.
I did not speak but I thought; I do not care what comes after, I have seen the
dragons on the wind of the morning.

24

�CRISPADO
CRISPADO...
DESVENTAJA AL EMPOBRECIMiENTO Y DESVALIDO,
EL CHILLIDO DESTAPAR EL DESVARl'O,
ENCADENAR EL ENCINTO ...
CULPABLE
CULPABLE
CULPABLE
By Carol Ann Green

ON THE EDGE
ON THE EDGE.
DISADVANTAGE TO IMPOVERISHMENT AND HELPLESSNESS
THE SHRIEK OF UNCOVER MADNESS,
TO PUT THE PREGNANT WOMAN IN CHAINS ....
GUILTY ..
GUILTY ...
GUILTY.

SPeC'Al COt'-ECTICN
SASPF® 301-iECiE

25

�A Critical Look at
Massacre at Fall Creek
By Mary Carrick
Course: Lileralure of the American West
Instructor: Arlene Larson
Assignment: After reading a work of your choice from among the suggested readings, write a paper to show
that the work does/does not fit into the category of literature of the American West. Your analysis should
reflect some understanding of the common characteristics of the works from the assigned reading.

was also forced upon the cultures of the numerous
Native American tribes existing on the frontier,
with the survival of their race put in jeapordy.
This westward expansion including the
experiences of travel, work, family life, and
spirituality, and the change from the known to the
unknown are unique to that perifxl of our country's
history in the eighiccn-hundreds. Most western
lileralure deals with some aspect of this cultural
change and the lime period of the nineteenth
century.

For a work of literature to be considered
literature of the American West it should contain
the experience of the frontier where civilization and
wilderness come together. Il will deal with the
concerns of the established eastern part of the
country converging onto the untamed area of the
United Slates. The culture of the established
eastern stales was brought along with the settlers as
they moved west, but, al the same lime, they were
forced to modify their behavior and values. These
changes were necessary for their survival. Change
26

�Jcssamyn West's novel The Massacre at Tall
Creek shares these characteristics with other
literature of the American West. The story is set in
1824, in Indiana early in the westward movement.
The Indian tribes of this area were not yet moved
onto reservations, but were allowed to live on some
of the land, or sell to U.S. land agents. The
government bought land from the Seneca Indians
for mere trinkets, and sold it to would-be eastern
settlers. Much of this land was unsuitable for
farming. In this setting, the move of civilization to
the wilderness and the difficult questions
concerning humanity that arise are borne out in the
story of the people of Fall Creek, Indiana.
The Senecas of this area lived peaceably near the
while settlers of Fall Creek. This small band
consisting mostly of women and children
subscribed to the leachings of the Indian prophet
Handsome Lake, which resembled the leachings of
Christ. The story begins with the character Jud
Clasby, an Indian hunter, speaking with this group
and thinking of an unsolved problem of the
frontier: “Clasby didn't want to waste breath on this
old argument. Besides, who was first cut no ice.
What cut ice was who would be here last. Why
could’l the Indians sec this? They could die in their
tracks saying, ‘We were here first’” (West 7). The
conflict begins after Clasby and four other men
from lhe sclllemenl murder these Indians in cold
blood because they fell they were competing for
game in the area.
Large bands of Senecas to lhe north were
outraged by these killings, and threatened to lake
vengeance on the whiles if lhe perpetrators were
noi tried as murderers. This would be lhe first trial
of its kind, white men on trial for killing Indians.
The murderers, save Clasby, were all easily found
as they had gone bragging about their deeds among
their neighbors. West gives us lhe sense of what a
shock it was lo lhe men who sat in jail puzzling
over being treated as criminals now for something
up until lhe present they had been praised for.
"How could white men ever hold their heads up
again, after being clapped into jail for killing an
Indian'.’” (West 88). The Monroe administration

was ready lo make an. example of these men, and
lhe settlers could only guess at the consequences it
would bring to their lives.
Caleb Cape, the settlement's pastor, and his
family empathize with both Indians and whiles, but
their lives are closely lied with lhe convicted men.
Hannah Cape, his daughter, is lhe heroine in lhe
story. Her character is lhe embodiment of lhe
resistance lo change that is present on the frontier.
She helps her father to protect the bodies of lhe
murdered Indians, so they can be buried later. She
sees lhe atrocity first-hand. She falls in love with
Charlie Fori, an Eastern lawyer hired lo defend the
while men. She is torn between her love for
Charlie, and wanting him to succeed, and her
conscience that says any man who murders another
must pay lhe consequences, according lo the law.
When she and Charlie have a falling out, she is
wooed by a lawyer for lhe prosecution who has no
sympathies for lhe convicted men. She is allraclcd
lo lhe new way of thinking that Oscar Dilk
represents, but has stronger feelings for ihc
prisoners and the old ways that Charlie represents.
She and lhe rest of the settlement are faced with the
question, is lhe law of lhe east to be applied to lhe
west, and is this a good thing? West shows this
struggle in a conversation between Lizzie Cape and
Luther Bemis before he turns himself in:
Bemis: “Nothing happened last week except that
we suddenly caught sight of what's around a comer
we'd never turned before.”
Lizzie: “What wa.s that sight?”
“A world where an Indian is a human being who
can't be killed like a bear or a wolf.”
“What's that mean for us?”
“I don't know. There's darkness ahead.” (West
90)
Hannah and her father spend lime in the jail with
lhe prisoners praying with them, and ministering to
them. Caleb, overcome by sympathy for Luther
Bemis, lhe only man who turned himself in, helps
him lo escape lo see his new baby. As Luiher
aliempls lo gel lo his wife, he hides in a hollow log
where he falls asleep lo awaken with his feel
frozen. The Indians, inieni on capturing him lo

�make sure he is hanged, find him and return him to
the jail. Because he is repentant, and admits his
wrong to the Indians, they promise to see that his
wife and child are brought to him before he is
hanged. Hannah takes the Indians to get Ora
Bemis, and lhey are allowed to say their goodbyes
before the hanging.
The drama of the trial proceeds with most of the
population in attendance along with prominent
Indian chiefs to sec that justice is done. As each
conviction is followed by a death sentence, the
people of the community are increasingly anxious
to have these men put to death to secure their own
safety. At a church service for the convicted men.
West shows us the ambivalence of the people to
accept eastern law. “There would be present those
fearing that the sentencing would be harsh, but also
those who feared that without death sentences all of
them would die at the hands of the northern tribes”
(West 213).
Caleb Cape slays in the jail with the convicted
men until the day of the hanging. Here he is forced
to face death, the inevitable deaths of four healthy
men. He finds that there is nothing he can say to
make things easier for the men, or himself.
When the dreaded day arrives, so do settlers from
all over the slate to watch the happenings. It i.s a
tense day as the Indians watch to ensure that justice
is carried out, and the sheriff fears a last-minute
attempt to save the prisoners. West seems to be
telling the reader that she also sympathizes with
both sides, and feels the changes on the frontier
were loo long in coming. This idea is presented in
Charlie Fort’s conversation with the judge:
Fort: “The law didn't lake into consideration that
no one had payed any attention to the law for a
hundred years when it come to killing Indians.”
Judge: “Attention will be payed from now on.”
(West p. 290)
West is addressing the tragedy that these few
while men must be made examples of when killing
Indians had been their means of survival to this
point. She is also suggesting that the frontier was a
kill-or-bc’killcd situation with the strongest in
battle winning the land, tragic a.s it is. This idea

can be seen in her description of John Wixx! as he
is about to be hanged, “From his cradle to now, the
old man had heard talk of moving west. . . But
there was no way to go west without killing
Indians. Now the old man, for doing what
everybody knew had to be done was going to be . .
. hanged by his poor old neck until dead” (292).
The three men arc hanged, and as the convicted boy
is about to lake his turn, Hannah takes a pot of
coals up to the gallows, and puls her hand on them
(as a show of bravery) to plead to the Indians lo
spare the boy's life. At ihe same time the governor
rides in with a pardon for him. Charlie comes to
Hannah's aide, and Hannah embraces his genuine
love, rejecting the insincerity of Oscar Dilk. This
rejoining of Hannah and Charlie represents the
joining of the culture of the east combining with
the new country of the west. Hannah will not
become completely “eastemized,” and Charlie will
not become “wcslcmized,” but they will unite the
best of both cultures, and continue their lives on the
frontier.
The release of the boy at tlic climatic end of the
story may be West’s suggestion that there was hope
to bridge the large gap between east and west if ihe
young generation of whites and Indian.s could treat
each other as human beings. She leaves the reader
little hope of this peace though, as she shows the
Indians gathering, and uilking of the revenge they
will have upon Clasby. They have him captured,
and leave in eager anticipation of the torture and
the feast that are lo come (310).
Jessamyn West's story of the people of Fall Creek
in showing the paradox of settling the west shares
this characteristic with the archetype of the
American Western novel. The Virginian. Unlike
Wister, Jessamyn West does not romanticize the
west, but in her story shows the flaws of ihe
coming civilization and the flaws of Ihc lawless
frontier. She shows these ideas through the
readiness of bolh Indians and whiles to live by selfmade laws. She seems lo prefer the civilized order
since it prevails in her story. The story of the
Virginian, on the other hand, shows Wister's
preference for lynch law as it prevails, and his
28

�frontier through the conflict of the settlers and
eastern law, and in the conflict in the romance of
Hannah.
The Massacre of Fall Creek is in the tradition of
literature of the American west as it deals with the
frontier experience and with those difficult issues
facing humanity that were found in the history of
our country during the nineteenth century.
Jessamyn West’s work of the story at Fall Creek
closely resembles that of the archetype of western
literature. The Virginian, through its plot structure
and central issue of change on the frontier.

atlraction to life without formal restrictions. Wister
has a judge in his story defend the lynch law
practiced in the cattle country in the late eighteenhundreds (Wister 270). West does not do this, but
has transgressors in her story subject to the
established law.
Jessamyn West's work shares Wister's theme of
civilization versus wilderness, and both show the
coming changes to the frontier through die major
conflicts in the stories. Wister shows this change
through the conflicts between the Virginian and the
villain Trampas, and the conflict in the Virginian's
romance. West shows the change coming onto the

Bibliography
Wesi, Jessamyn. The Massacre al Fall Creek. New York: Ilarcoun, Brace Jovanovich, 1975.
Wister, Owen. The Virginian. New York, New York; Nal Penquin Inc., 1979.

29

�Food for Thought:
The Images of Christina Rossetti
By Cheryl Collums
Course: English Lileralure II
Instructor: Dr. Melon Raines
Using materials you have collected in your reading logs and in class discussion, write an intcrprclalion of the
work of one author in which you trace a pattern of imagery to explicate the text or to prove your thesis.

Food is such a wonderful pleasure! We indulge
ourselves with it. we reward each other with it, we
use it as bait (the way to a man's heart. . . .). Our
mouths waler al lhe sight of a dinner table laden
with steaming meal, rich sauces, delicate pastries,
and ripe luscious fruit. Il is a powerful image
because wc can all relate to the sights, smells.

tastes, and textures that accompany eating. When
the fare is remarkably delicious, wc even say that
it's so good, it’s sinful. It is not surprising to note,
then, that Christina Rossetti has used food images
to convey her themes of temptation and sin, and
redemption through suffering in her poem “The
Goblin Market”!

I All references to the primary source are to “The Goblin Market,” The Norton Anthology of English Literature, Ed. M. 11. Abrams,
el al. 2 vols. (New York: W.W. Norton and Co., 1986). pp. 1508-1520. They will be documented in the text in parentheses following
lhe quotation.

30

�The poem tells the story of two sisters, Lizzie and
Laura, who were templed by the cries of the goblin
men to “Come buy our orchard fruits. Come buy,
come buy” (3-4) as they gathered water from the
brook in tlie evenings. Lizzie covered her head and
ran from temptation, but Laura succumbed. She
bought a feast of delicious fruits with a lock of her
golden hair, and returned to tell her sister about her
incredible experience. She longed to taste the
wonderful fruit again, but discovered that once a
maiden has given in to temptation, she is no longer
able to hear the goblins' cries, and is left to wither
and die, yearning for the taste of their fruit. In
order to save her sister, Lizzie went to the goblin
men to buy some fruit to take to Laura, but they
insisted that she eat it there with them. When
Lizzie refused, the infuriated goblins beat her,
clawed her face and neck, pulled her hair out, and
tried to squeeze the fruit into her mouth. She
refused to open her mouth, and the juice of the fruit
Sluck like syrup to her face, lodged in her dimples,
and ran down her neck. The angry goblins
retreated and Lizzie ran home to her sister, having
redeemed Laura's sins through her suffering.
The first stanza of the poem describes the
tempting fruit. Almost every fruit imaginable can
be found in the list. Rossetti's images are real as
she describes “Plump unpecked cherries, . . .
Bloom-down-cheeked peaches, . . . Wild free-born
cranberries” (7,9, and 11). We can see the fruits as
they are described, and can identify with the feeling
of temptation. When Laura is enticed into lasting
the fruil, the verse takes on a more subtle, sensual
tone. “She clipped a precious golden lock... Then
sucked their fruil globes fair or red:/ Sweeter than
honey from the rock./ Stronger than man-rejoicing
wine,/ Clearer than waler flowed that juice;/ She
never tasted such before,/ . . . She sucked and
sucked and sucked the more/ Fruits which that
unknown orchard bore;/ She sucked until her lips
were sore” (126-136). Laura's encounter with the
goblin fruil was pleasant and intoxicating. She
yearned for more, but of course was to be denied.
Her sister Lizzie’s experience was violent. Al
first the goblins attempt to seduce her with ihe fruil

as they ’’hugged her and kissed her/ Squeezed and
caressed her:/ . . . (saying) / Bob al our
cherries/Bite at our peaches,/. . . Pluck them and
suck lhemyPomegranaies, figs” (348-362). She
refused their advances, and the scene reads like a
gang rape, as the evil goblins “Held her hands and
squeezed their fruits/ against her mouth to make her
eat” (406-407). She was scratched, kicked,
pinched, mauled, and stamped upon in a vain
attempt to force her to eat. But through all this
suffering, she remained strong, “Like a lily in a
floody Like a rock of blue-veined stone/ ... Like a
fruit-crowned orange-tree/ . . . Like a royal virgin
town” (409-418). It i.s interesting that Rossetti
chose the metaphor of a fruit-crowned orange-tree
to denote something of strength and purity.
Perhaps she meant to imply that the fruit on the tree
was still pure and “virginal,” while the fruil
harvested by the goblins had become tainted.
Finally, Rossetti uses the juice of the fruil as an
instrument of salvation. Lizzie returned from the
glen and told Laura, “Hug me, kiss me, suck my
juices/ Squeezed from goblin fruits for you,/ . . .
For your sake I have braved the glen/ And had to
do with goblin merchant men.” (468-474). Laura
covered her sister with tears and kisses until her
lips began to burn, and “Swift fire spread thro' her
veins, knocked at her heart,/ Met the fire
smouldering there/ and overbore its lesser flame”
(507-509). The juice from the fruil was an antidote
for the poison in Laura's blood, and by morning she
was herself again.
The sexual feeling expressed in the poem is very
strong. Rossetti uses the fruil as a vehicle to
illustrate different kinds of love. The fruil is used
as a tool of evil temptation by the goblin men.
They entice, they tease, they lure Laura with their
fruits. She is intoxicated by the experience, but
also tainted and spoiled. Lizzie's encounter is
violent. The goblins are no longer seductive, they
are vicious. Rossetti characterizes men's attitudes
in sexual relationships as dominating, controlling,
and even violent. On the other hand, the fruil is
used as a tool of salvation by Lizzie to save her
sister from death. Lizzie presents herself to Laura

31

�almost as a sexual offering, but I don't feel that
Rossetti was referring to lesbianism. I think she
was saying that the bond between the women was
life-sustaining and fulfilling, rather than
destructive.
Rossetti’s choice of fruit to help convey her
themes of temptation and salvation gives the poem
a very sensual, sexual feeling. It could be that she
felt sin and sex were closely related. In the last

stanza of “The Goblin Market,” she tells u.s that the
sisters eventually marry and have families of their
own, but the bond between them never falters. 1
believe Rossetti had strong emotional tics with her
mother and sister, but was perhaps uncertain about
malc/fcmalc relationships, since she herself never
married. In any case, her tempting images of food
make delicious reading.

32

�Response to James J. Kelly
By Dusk Anderson
Course: Sculpture I
Instructor: Linda Ryan
Assignment: Write a personal response to Chapter Six (“Content: The Meaning of Sculpture") of The
Sculptural Idea by James J. Kelly. Do not simply summarize the informalitxi, but use it to explore your own
ideas about art; you may agree, disagree, or add to what Kelly presents.

freedom to pursue and express change, and
above all, the spirit of the artist transcribed
through the work.
Spirit is never fully realized consciously.
Realizing who and what you are is the purpose of
life. It is a process, a journey of discovery. Art is
an expression of this striving to uncover one's
unconscious but always present spirit. Art takes
work. Honesty and awareness of inner feelings
and, perhaps most frightening, sharing that inner
piece of self in a work is a necessity if it is to be
art.
Those artists in the mall that have skill (some
even a high degree of skill) but don't seem to
produce art arc just churning out pieces.

I go to the mall and see “art” shows and rarely
see anything I call art in spite of the fact that there
is often a great deal of skill displayed in the work.
I hadn't been able to pin down the reason I felt the
pieces displayed were not really art until I read
chapter six of James J. Kelley's The Sculptural
Idea.
Linder “Communication of Meaning,” Kelly says
that the question, “What effect do intuition and the
subconscious have on the content a sculptor gives
to his work?” is unanswerable. Nonsense! He
answers it himself in the next section when he says
of content:
It is the visionary sense of the artist, the
quantity and quality of form and matter, the

33

�Manipulation of materials docs not go beyond the
superficial. Il docs nol reach into the soul. They
aren't giving of their inner being. Technique cannot
make up for this. A true artist puls her heart and
soul into a piece. She risks much more than ihc
“mall artist.” The true artist may turn oui a series
of similar works but there is progression or
retrogression or exploration in them. In other
words there is change and growth, and that, to me,
equals life.
Art has life. Most of “mall art” has no life. Il is
like a sluffed bird. If there is no life, there is no art.
Even a sluffed bird can be art if the artist uses it for
a purpose, if he brings out an inner meaning from
within his soul. If he then simply tries to reproduce

that inner meaning, it loses its meaning because the
artist has changed and the time-frame has changed.
Life has continued on, Iciiving him behind.
Without input from the inner being, a work lacks
an element of lime — the difference of the artist's
perspective al the lime of conception and the lime
of realization. The artist would be trying to create
out of a remembered perspective. I don't think
that's possible. I think change, however
strenuously resisted, cannot be slopped. An artist
must express this change in her work, nol cling to
the old simply because it worked in the past or
because it still sells, or her work is lifeless. Art
comes through being true to oneself, nol in trying
to please the masses.

34

�The Effect of Exclusive Language
on Third Grade Children
By Joleen A. Borgerding
Course: Child Psychology
Instructor: Dr. Ruth Doyle
Assignment: The major assignment for the class is a literature review or a project based on one of the research
designs discussed in class. Ihis project is an experimental design with a brief literature review.

an exclusive or masculine-generic manner while the P form of
the questionnaire was phrased in an inclusive manner. Answers
to the eight questions on the questionnaire were in the form of
female and male slick figures. Ibc children were instructed to
circle the answer or answers which they thought correctly
answered each question. Each questionnaire was scored as
representing cither an inclusive or exclusive interpretation. Data
were analyzed with the x^ statistic, and results revealed support
for the research hypothesis (x^=11.5, df=l. p&lt;0.(X)l).

Abstract
Ibis study examined the impact of exclusive or sexist language
on children. It was predicted that children would exclude
females more often when presented with male-dominated
exclusive language than when presented with inclusive
language. Twenty-three third grade children from Manor
Heights Elementary School and 24 third grade children from
Pineview Elementary School completed one of two forms of a
questionnaire. The M form of the questionnaire was phrased in

35

�person’s thought process.
Gordon (1984) conducted a study in which
college juniors and seniors who were enrolled in a
preservice teacher education program respondctl to
questions dealing with early man or early people.
Students answered the questions through drawings
and were asked to give names to lhe figures in the
drawings. By determining the sex of the figures
according to lhe names given to them, it was found
that 23% of the students responded to every
question on the masculine generic form by drawing
male figures. None of those taking lhe inclusive or
neutral ("people") form, nor those taking lhe
specifically inclusive ("men and women") form
drew all male figures for every item.
The results of a study conducted by Moulton,
Robinson, and Elias (1978) demonstrated further
evidence of the unsucccssfulness of masculine
nouns and pronouns in producing a gender-neutral
effect. Subjects created a story about a fictional
character in response to a situation provided by lhe
experimenter. In one condition the situation was
worded with "his," another was worded with
"their," and the last condition was worded with "his
or her." Gender of the fictional character was
determined by its name, and lhe frequency of lime
females were portrayed as characters in lhe stories
and the frequency of limes males were portrayed as
characters in lhe stories were compared. Results
indicated that the use of "his" created the image of
males significantly more often than females, while
females and males were portrayed nearly equally
when "his or her" and "their" were employed.
The present study was conducted in order to
determine the effect of masculine-generic language
on children. Based on extensive past research it
was predicted that children presented with
masculine-generic or exclusive language would
lend to exclude females more often that children
presented with neutral or inclusive language.

For lhe sake of convenience it is common to use
masculine forms of nouns and pronouns when lhe
antecedent is unknown or when lhe anlecedcnl
includes both sexes. It has been laught ihai this use
of masculine nouns and pronouns is grammatically
correct Such use of pronouns and nouns implies
that all people are assumed to be male unless
otherwise specified.
Language has a great impact on our daily lives
merely by shaping lhe thought process and by
influencing lhe ways in which people relate to each
other (Morris, 1990). The relationships between
females and males are influenced by everyday
words, and this language must treat males and
females as equals. If lhe language is biased toward
either sex, it is sexist. Miller and Swift (1972)
define sexist language as "any language that
expresses stereotyped attitudes and expectations, or
that assumes lhe inherent superiority of one sex
over the other" (p. 195).
The use of masculine nouns and pronouns to
include both sexes has been found to be ineffective
in doing its "generic” job. Several studies have
found that masculine-generic language has male
specific connotations when lhe generic is intended
(Moulton, Robinson, &amp; Elias, 1978; MacKay,
1980; Sneizek &amp; Jazwinski, 1986; Hamilton,
1988). If such language succeeds in excluding
females far more often than including them, a
different method of communication that succeeds
in including both sexes should be employed.
The exclusive nature of masculine-generic
language may seem to be very subtle. This is
because in all areas of our lives (the school, the
family, and lhe work environment) exclusive
langague has been employed since we learned lhe
English language. Reversing lhe direction of the
bias provides one way for people to realize the
extent of the bias. Imagine referring to lhe average
or hypothetical person as "the woman on lhe
street." Imagine referring to people in the business
world, both women and men, as "businesswomen."
Imagine referring to lhe human race as
"womankind." Il seems absurd, yet this is exactly
the effect that masculine-generic language has on a

Method
Subjects
The subjects were 23 children from a Manor
36

�Heights Elementary School tliird grade class taught
by a woman and 24 children from a Pineview
Elementary School third grade class taught by a
man. There were a total of 17 females and 30
males. The two forms of the questionnaire (P and
M) were randomly handed out to the children with
approximately half the males and half the females
in each ircatmcnl group.

Therefore, a child had lo have had included both
sexc.s at least 75% (sum greater than or equal lo
6/8) of the lime in order for the questionnaire lo be
considered an inclusive interpretation. Il was
reasoned lhal tf a child's answers consistently
included both sexes al least 75% of the lime, ihcn
the child had a certain image in mind which
included both sexes rather than chance and random
circling of answers.

Procedure
The experimental design consisted of two
treatment groups in which the form of the
questionnaire was the variable under manipulation.
Sex of the subject was an organismic variable. The
experiment mettsured the differences in the manner
in which subjects interpreted eight questions on the
P form vs. the M form. Questions on the P
(person) form were phrased in an inclusive manner,
using words such as people, they, hand-made, and
ancestors. Questions on the M (man) form were
phrased in an exclusive or masculine-oriented
generic manner, using words such as man, he, man­
made, and forefathers.
Answers to each of the eight questions were in
the form of female and male slick figure people,
with each question having either four or five
choices. (Appendix A) The children were
instructed to read each question and circle
anywhere from one to five answers which they
thought best answered the question. Il was
emphasized lhal ihe children were not being tested,
rather, the experimenter simply wanted to see how
they answered the questions.
Each of the eight questions was scored with
cither a "1”, meaning the child had included both
males and females when answering the question, or
a "0”, meaning the child had included only males or
only females when answering the question. After a
score for each of the eight questions had been
established, a comprehensive score for the entire
questionnaire was derived. The questionnaire was
scored with a "1" if the sum of the scores for the
eight questions was equal to or greater than six. A
"0" was given if the sum was less than six.

Results
Comprehensive scores were combined into a
contingency table of Form (P/M) vs. Inicrprelalion
(Inclusive/Exclusive). Data were analyzed for
significance with a 2x2 Chi Square. The data
indicated results in the expected direction.
Analysis revealed a statistically significant
difference in the manner in which the children
interpreted the exclusive language vs. the inclusive
language
11.5, df=:l, p&lt;0.001), demonstrating
support for the research hypothesis.
Of those children taking the P form, 82.6%
received a final score of "1", meaning that 75% or
more of their answers had included females and
males. Thirty-nine percent of the children in this
group interpreted all eight questions inclusively.
Furthermore, all children taking the P form
included a female figure at one lime or another.
In contrast, only 29.2 % of the children taking the
M form received a "1" as a comprehensive .score,
meaning lhal the majority of these children
excluded females (males were excluded on six
questions out of the entire 47 questionnaires) when
presented with male-dominated exclusive language.
Even more distressing was the fact that only two
out of the 24 children (8.7%) taking the M form of
the questionnaire answered all eight questions by
including both male and female figures. Three out
of the 24 children (12.5 %) answered the entire M
form of the questionnaire without once Including a
female figure. Figure 1 (inicrprelalion of Form P
vs. Form M) provides a graphic summary of these
results.

37

�Discussion

bodi sexes, results would be free from bias.
Although the results of the experiment showed
that children who look ihe M form tended lo
exclude females considerably more often than did
those children who look the P form, one should
consider that third grade children, usually around
the age of seven, have generally not yet reached ihe
level of formal operation according lo Piaget's
cognitive theory (Skolnick, 1986). Children near
the age of seven are most likely between the
prcoperalional stage and the concrete operational
stage. Ability lo use basic logic is beginning to
develop in the concrete operation stage, but abstract
reasoning and theoretical thinking are not truly
present until the formal operational stage
(Skolnick, 1986). Therefore, it may be argued that
the exclusion of females in the experiment was not
due lo the exclusive nature of masculine nouns and
pronouns, but instead may be explained by looking
al the development of language and reasoning skills
in children.

These resulls demonstrated that the use of
language greatly effected the extent to which this
sample of third grade children included females
and males. In accord with the research hypothesis,
children who completed the P form of the
questionnaire included both sexes significantly
more often than did children who completed the M
form of the questionnaire.
In conducting future research it would be
beneficial to make use of a longitudinal study to
prevent resulls from being confounded by the
effects of age and language development.
Furthermore, the questionnaire should be scored so
that an exclusive interpreuilion accounts for only
the exclusion of females; in the present study
"exclusive" was considered to be the exclusion of
either sex. Finally, if each questionnaire was
scored as inclusive when 50% or more (compared
to 75% in the present study) of its answers included

Figure 1
Interpretation of Form P vs. Form M

Inclusive

Exclusive

38

�However, evidence rejecling lhe above
hypothesis has been acquired by extending the
experiment to children of all grade levels, milking it
possible to investigate any differences in the
manner in which children of different ages interpret
exclusive and inclusive language. Such an
experiment was conducted by Gordon (1984) in
which both forms of lhe questionnaire used in the
present study were distributed to elementary school
children in grades one through six. The results
demonstrated that children in each grade level
responded to exclusively masculine forms of nouns
and pronouns by excluding females while those
presented with inclusive nouns and pronouns
included both sexes.
The results of the present experiment along with
extensive past research should not be simply
overlooked and credited to the reasoning and
language development of children. The research
shows that a severe problem arisc.s when maledominated exclusive language is employed. This
problem is the virtual invisibility of women. Maledominated exclusive language may also contribute
to the discrimination of women.
The implications of exclusive language arc
extensive. When masculine-dominated exclusive
language is employed, the idea of male
"superiority” and female "inferiority” is reflected.
Calling attention to exclusive language makes it
possible to call attention to lhe underlying attitudes
that dictate interaction between lhe sexes.
Possibly lhe most harmful aspect of exclusive
language is the part it plays in perpetuating
stereotypical sex-roles. Children who are raised in
an environment which ignores lhe female gender
are given lhe idea that it is “a man’s world.” In a
study by the Task Force of lhe National
Organization of Women which evaluated the extent
of scx-role stereotyping in childrens’ books (cited
in Bordelon, 1985), it was found that “boys and
men were present in lhe readers in overwhelmingly
larger numbers than girls and women.”
Furthermore, males were typically portrayed as
being clever, imaginative, adventuresome, strong,
and independent while females were portrayed as

being passive, weak, and dependent on male
initiative. In addition to lhe limited and negative
view of female characteristics, females were
depicted as having very few occupational choices
(nurse, mother, secretary, and teacher). Such
stereotypes are very detrimental to children,
especially in their early formative years.
DcLoach, Cassidy, and Carpenter (1987)
conducted a study in which they had mothers read
three popular books to their children. The mother’s
use of feminine or masculine names or pronoun.s to
refer to gender-neutral characters was recorded.
The results showed that 95% of these characters
who were intended to be gender-neutral were
referred to as males by lhe mothers. This suggests
that the prominence and importance of the male
gender along with lhe invisibility and unimportance
of the female gender is reinforced by most parents.
Similarly, the creative writings of elementary
sch(X)l children were examined for evidence of sex
differences and sex-role perceptions (Trepanier &amp;
Romatowski, 1985), and a predominance of male
characler.s and assignment of allribulcs to male
characters was found.
Children have been found to display confusion
when presented with female occupants of
traditionally male roles and male occupants of
traditionally female roles. Rosenthal and Chapman
(1982) found that elementary school children who
were asked to name such occupants would
frequently give inappropriate responses. For
example, children named female doctors “nurses”
while correctly naming the male occupants of this
role “doctors.”
Success in obtaining an androgynous society
where females and males are accepted as equals
begins by raising our children in an atmosphere
which does not foster stereotypical altitudes
regarding sex-roles. Encouraging equality and
androgyny must begin in lhe early years of a child's
life. Creating this healthy atmosphere involves
providing a method of communication which docs
not glorify the male gender while diminishing the
female gender.
39

�Appendix A

Nome

Boy

Girl

Groda

1. Christmas is a time when people of goodwill gather to celebrate. Circle the group or groups

2. Buying gilts for our family can be hard. Sometimes a salesperson is very helpful. Circle the
helpful salesperson (or salespersons) below.

3. Many gifts are hand-made. Here are some gifts, showing how they are made. Circle the

4. Our pilgrim ancestors made a lot of their gifts themselves. Circle the pilgrim ancestor or

40

P

�2-P

5. Which ofthese people show the spirit of brotherly love? Circle them.

K If i
6. During holiday seasons, people seem to beat peace with other people. Circle this.

7. Which people are wishing on a star to make their wishes come true? Circle them.

8. People think of others during holidays. Which of these do?

41

�References
Bordelon, K. (1985). Sexism in reading materials. Reading Teacher, 38, 792-797

DeLoach. J.S., Cassidy, D.J., &amp; Carpenter, C.J (1987), The three bears are all boys: Mother's gender labeling of neutral picture book
characters. SexRoles, 17, 163-178.
Gordon, S.L. (1984, June). "Man" --Does It Mean Men and Women or Just Men? Paper presented al a 1984 Women's Study Group
North Dakota.

Hamilton, M.C. (1988). Using masculine generics: Docs generic he increase male bias in the user's imagerY? SexRoles 19 785799.
MacKay, D.G. (1980). Psychology, prescriptive grammar, and the pronoun problem. American Psychologist, 35, 444-449.

Miller, C., &amp; Swift, K. (1976). Words and Women: New Language in New Times. New York: Doubleday.
Miller, C., &amp; Swift, K. (1972). One Small Step for Genkind. rpt in G. Goshgarian (Ed.), Exploring Language (198Q (pp. 193-204).
Boston: Little, Brown and Company.
Morris, C.G. (1990). Psychology: An Introduction (7th ed.) New Jersey: Prentice Hall

Moulton, J., Robinson, G.M., &amp; Elias, C. (1978). Sex bias in language use:“Neulral” pronouns that aren't. American Psychologist
33, 1031-1036.

Rosenthal, D.A., &amp; Chapman, D.C. (1982). The lady spaceman: Children’s perceptions of sex-stereotyped occupations. SexRoles
8,959-965.

Skolnick, A.S. (1986). The Psychology of Human Development. New York: Harcourt Brace Jovanovich.
Sniezek, J., A. Jazwinski. C.H. (1986). Gender bias in English; In search of fair language. Journal of applied Social Psychology 16,
642-662.
Trepanier, M.D., &amp; Romatowski, J.A. (1985). Attributes and roles assigned to characters in children's writing: Sex differences and
sex-role perceptions. SexRoles, 13,263-272.

42

�Speech Outlines
Course: Public Speaking
Inslruclor: Gale Alexander

The student was required to prepare and present a 4-8 minute speech to persuade. Ihis outline is turned in al
the lime the speech is presented. Il is primarily a tool in preparation and should not be used for notes during

the actual presentation.

43

�By Julie Regan

1981,477 people were arrested for shoplifting, an
average of 39.8 per month. The breakdown of
those arrested was male adults, 25; female adults,
43; male juveniles, 155; and female juveniles, 254.

SUBJECT: Shoplifting
GENERAL PURPOSE: To persuade

B. People you least expect could be shoplifters.

SPECIFIC PURPOSE; At the end of my speech
the audience will know that shoplifting is wrong,
morally and legally.

1. James Wentzel was caught shoplifting $5.66
worth of food items. James Wentzel was the
president of the Legal Services Corporation, a
federal organi7.alion.

METHOD OF DEVELOPMENT: ProblemSolution

2. A Financially stable, married woman with two
children was caught stealing a necklace. She was
arrested and charged with shoplifting.

INTRODUCTION:

I. For Melissa it was just a way to pick up a few
little things she wanted -- makeup, an album, some
earrings. It was exciting to get away with
something, and besides all her friends did it.
Melissa got away with it several times before she
was finally caught, stealing a $2 magazine, and the
cashier called the police.

3. A teenager named Jenny wa.s shoplifting for
some clothc.s with her friends. Il was just for fun,
until she got caught.

II. What made these three people, who arc very
different, do such things. There have been many
reasons given why this crime occurs.

IL Maybe this story of Melissa sounds familiar.
Maybe you know someone who has shoplifted or
maybe you yourself have even done it. Shoplifting
is a widespread problem confronting the retail
community. Our nation's retailers attributed a
$2,000,000,000 loss to this crime.

A. Kleptomania is defined as a persistent neurotic
impulse to steal, usually without economic motive.
B. Peer pressure is a problem. If your friends are
doing it, it can be a way of gelling acceptance from
the group.

III. I'd like to start off by telling you who d(x;s it
and why. Then discuss the problems shoplifting
can create. Finally, I will tell you a few things that
can be done to combat this crime.

C. The need to assert their identity and
independence may also motivate shoplifting.
D. There's a sense of power that comes with
getting away with something, pulling something
over on authority.

BODY:

I. Shoplifting knows no age, economic, social,
racial, or religious barriers. Anyone could be a
shoplifter.

E. In some cases people feel justified to steal under
the assumption that the stores calculate a certain
percentage in ihe mark-up price due to theft; thus,
the store expects someone lo steal.

A. A survey conducted at a major national-chain
retail store in San Jose, California, revealed that, in

F. Still in other cases, shoplifting is a cry for help.

44

�III. No mailer whal lhe reason is and no mailer
how hard you iry lo juslify il, il's slill wrong,
morally and legally. Stealing a necklace or a hal
pin may seem like an innocent act, but in actuality
stealing can cause several problems.

emotionally, rather than financially, deprived, and
they derive emotional satisfaction from stealing.
By becoming involved in more positive activities -jobs, hobbies, volunteer work - shoplifters can
overcome lhe urge to steal.”

A. Il can cause a person with an otherwise
unblemished record lo have a scar for life. Don't
kid yourself, shoplifting is a crime. You'll be
arrested, finger primed, and pholographcd just like
any other criminal. This one act will follow you
forever.

B. Another possible solution is group discussions.
In Portland, Oregon, a program entitled Theft Talk
was started as a way lo educate shoplifters.

1. Il ha.s a 95% success rale with teen shoplifters.
2. A group discussion—not a lecture—is whal Theft
Talk is all about.
3. Il attempts to get across the crucial idea that
stealing is wrong. Until this is understood, chances
are they'll steal again.

B. Harm can come lo your loved ones. They may
feel shame, embarrassmcnl, or guilt. They may
feel they have let you down in some way. They
may blame ihcmsclvc.s for your irresponsible act.

CONCLUSION:
C. The economy is also damaged by shoplifting.
We all pay high prices because of shoplifting. The
stores raise their prices lo offset their losses, so il
costs us all money we work hard for.

I. I just encourage those of you who have
experienced the temptation to steal, not to. The
penalties are just too strong to risk il.

II. I want lo leave you with this question. Would
any of you invite an arrest record, embarrassmcnl,
possible family problems, and loss of dignity lo
shoplift an inexpensive item that you most certainly
could do without? I hope you've all answered, NO!

D. The establishment stolen from is also hurl.
Security costs are becoming higher and higher.

IV. This is a crime that needs lo be controlled
before il reaches an even greater proportion.

A. Some people find personal counselors lo be
helpful. One counselor staled, “Shoplifters are
Bibliography
Brown, Lindsay. "Five-Pinger Discouni; A t.ook al Shoplifting and Retail Security." USA Today 113:64-7 November, 1984.

Etchison, Birdie. “Shoplifting; An awful way to gel a record." Seventeen 45:198-9 August, 1986.
"I was a shoplifter.” Good Housekeeping 203:22+ July, 1986.
"Suffering Succotash.” Nation 243:721 December, 1986.

45

�By Lois Bringham

BODY:
I. Ann Hopkins was a very successful senior
accountant for Price Waterhouse in 1983.

SUBJECT: To explain ihal sexual stereotyping still
exists in the accounting profession.

A. The definition of accounting is the process of
recording, classifying, reporting, and interpreting
the financial data of an organization, according to
the authors of my Principles of Accounting hook.

GENERAL PURPOSE: To inform

SPECIFIC PURPOSE: To inform the class that the
rights of women accountants are violated when
presumptions about gender play a part in the
employment decisions.

B. Ann had the best record of the 88 candidates at
generating new business and securing multimillion
dollar contracts.

INTRODUCTION:

C. She brought in between $34 and $44 million
worth of business from just two important clients.

I. Imagine that the year is 1983 and you arc the
only woman candidate among the 88 company
accountants up for a partnership in the prestigious
Washington, D.C. accounting firm of Price
Waterhouse. You have the best record at
generating new business and securing multimillion
dollar contracts. You are expected to be a shoo-in.
And then your nomination is put on hold after your
evaluation by several male partners because you
are termed “macho” and in need of a “charm
school.” What would you do? Ann Hopkins quit
the firm and filed a lawsuit under Title VII of the
Civil Rights Act of 1964.

D. She lost the concensus vote in a process that
gave men who hardly knew her the power to veto
her candidacy.

1. One of them advised her to “walk more
femininely, dress more femininely, wear makeup,
have her hair styled and wetu’jewelry.”

2. Partners described her as “macho, harsh, and
aggressive,” speculating that she “may have
overcompensated for being a woman.”
3. Many male employers find it hard to shed the
long-held myth that men arc viewed as competitive
and self-confident, women should be weak and
passive.

II. The U.S. Supreme Court in a 6-to-3 ruling in
May of this year held that Price Waterhouse had
indeed based its decision on Ann Hopkins in part
on unlawful sexual stereotyping.

E. Hopkins quit the firm and filed a lawsuit under
Title VII of the Civil Rights Act of 1964 which
forbids employment discrimination because of a
person's sex, race, religion, or national origin.

III. Ann Hopkins’ litigation has made headlines
and opened doors for other professional women
who face job discriminations. We, the public, do
not have to put up with this illegal practice. First
I'd like to explain more about this particular case
and then I'd like to quote what some experts say the
effects this court ruling will have.

II. The U.S. Supreme Court announced its decision
upholding Hopkins in May of this year.
A. The 6-10-3 ruling wa.s hailed by civil rights and
women's advocates as opening the door for other
successful lawsuits against illegal sexual
stereotyping.

Transition: Let's look at Ann Hopkins' story and its
conclusion.
46

�B. Justice William Brennan wrote the lead opinion:
“An employer who objects to aggressiveness in
women but whose positions require this trail places
women in an intolerable and impermissible Calch22; out of a job if they behave aggressively and out
of a job if they don't.”

properly trained to ensure that race and sex aren't
part of the decision making process.”

C. “This decision will make a real difference to
women who arc trying to rise to the top of their
professions,” says Marcia Greenbergcr, a lop
managing attorney for the National Women's Law
Center in Washington.

G. As for Price Waterhouse, their woman attorney
observes, “The firm has a way to go when it comes
to women in lop jobs. Even after the prolonged
litigation, only 28 of their 900 current partners arc
women.” That figures roughly to be 3%.

D. According to many legal experts, the net result
of the court's ruling is that firms will be under
pressure to root out bias among individuals making
important personnel decisions.

CONCLUSION:

F. Ann Hopkins, whose lawsuit brought about this
landmark decision, is now a senior budget officer at
the World Bank.

I. Ann Hopkins's case highlights the stereotypes
many women continue to face in male-dominated
professions. “Why is it that men can be bastards
but women must wear pearls and a smile?”

E. Douglas McDowell of the Equal Employment
Advisory Council states, “Supervisors must be

Bibliography
Holmes, Sleven. "A Slap al Sex Stereotypes”. Ttme 133 (May 15, 1989) pg. 66.
Jacobs, Deborah. “Smile When You Say Thai, Panner”. Ms 17 (January/February 1989) pg. 137.

—. “TTieSexes: Myth America in lhe Workplace”. U.S. News &amp; World Report 106 (May 15,1989) pg. 14.

Walgenbadi, Paul II., et al. Principles of Accounting. Orlando, Florida: Harcourt Brace Jovanovich, Inc., 1987.

47

�IJSCallegr Drive
Cisptr, Wyoming 81601

Spring 1990

�</text>
                  </elementText>
                </elementTextContainer>
              </element>
            </elementContainer>
          </elementSet>
        </elementSetContainer>
      </file>
    </fileContainer>
    <collection collectionId="212">
      <elementSetContainer>
        <elementSet elementSetId="1">
          <name>Dublin Core</name>
          <description>The Dublin Core metadata element set is common to all Omeka records, including items, files, and collections. For more information see, http://dublincore.org/documents/dces/.</description>
          <elementContainer>
            <element elementId="50">
              <name>Title</name>
              <description>A name given to the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85473">
                  <text>Casper College Challenge </text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="47">
              <name>Rights</name>
              <description>Information about rights held in and over the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85474">
                  <text>&lt;a href="http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/"&gt;http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/&lt;/a&gt;</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="41">
              <name>Description</name>
              <description>An account of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85475">
                  <text>This digital collection contains issues of Challenge, a publication of Casper College student writing from across the curriculum but outside of writing-specific courses. Issues of the publication date from 1987 to 1991 and 1993 to 1996.</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="51">
              <name>Type</name>
              <description>The nature or genre of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85476">
                  <text>Text</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="39">
              <name>Creator</name>
              <description>An entity primarily responsible for making the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85477">
                  <text>Casper College</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="44">
              <name>Language</name>
              <description>A language of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85478">
                  <text>ENG</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="43">
              <name>Identifier</name>
              <description>An unambiguous reference to the resource within a given context</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85479">
                  <text>CCA 04.ii.1996.01_Challenge</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="42">
              <name>Format</name>
              <description>The file format, physical medium, or dimensions of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85480">
                  <text>PDF</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
          </elementContainer>
        </elementSet>
      </elementSetContainer>
    </collection>
    <itemType itemTypeId="1">
      <name>Text</name>
      <description>A resource consisting primarily of words for reading. Examples include books, letters, dissertations, poems, newspapers, articles, archives of mailing lists. Note that facsimiles or images of texts are still of the genre Text.</description>
      <elementContainer>
        <element elementId="7">
          <name>Original Format</name>
          <description>The type of object, such as painting, sculpture, paper, photo, and additional data</description>
          <elementTextContainer>
            <elementText elementTextId="85528">
              <text>Print publication</text>
            </elementText>
          </elementTextContainer>
        </element>
      </elementContainer>
    </itemType>
    <elementSetContainer>
      <elementSet elementSetId="1">
        <name>Dublin Core</name>
        <description>The Dublin Core metadata element set is common to all Omeka records, including items, files, and collections. For more information see, http://dublincore.org/documents/dces/.</description>
        <elementContainer>
          <element elementId="50">
            <name>Title</name>
            <description>A name given to the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85518">
                <text>1990 Challenge</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="47">
            <name>Rights</name>
            <description>Information about rights held in and over the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85519">
                <text>&lt;a href="http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/"&gt;http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/&lt;/a&gt;</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="56">
            <name>Date Created</name>
            <description>Date of creation of the resource.</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85520">
                <text>1990</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="41">
            <name>Description</name>
            <description>An account of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85521">
                <text>1990 issue of Challenge, a publication of Casper College student writing from across the curriculum but outside of writing-specific courses.</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="51">
            <name>Type</name>
            <description>The nature or genre of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85522">
                <text>Text</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="39">
            <name>Creator</name>
            <description>An entity primarily responsible for making the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85523">
                <text>Casper College</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="44">
            <name>Language</name>
            <description>A language of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85524">
                <text>ENG</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="70">
            <name>Is Part Of</name>
            <description>A related resource in which the described resource is physically or logically included.</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85525">
                <text>Casper College Challenge, CCA 04.ii.1996.01 WyCaC US. Casper College Archives and Special Collections.</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="43">
            <name>Identifier</name>
            <description>An unambiguous reference to the resource within a given context</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85526">
                <text>CCA 04.ii.1996.01_Challenge_1990</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="42">
            <name>Format</name>
            <description>The file format, physical medium, or dimensions of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85527">
                <text>PDF</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
        </elementContainer>
      </elementSet>
    </elementSetContainer>
  </item>
  <item itemId="8009" public="1" featured="0">
    <fileContainer>
      <file fileId="8360">
        <src>https://caspercollege.cvlcollections.org/files/original/6cfa969a780a37682fb8cad3fd2deee4.pdf</src>
        <authentication>b7de1258da44656e47ae37b6752e34a3</authentication>
        <elementSetContainer>
          <elementSet elementSetId="4">
            <name>PDF Text</name>
            <description/>
            <elementContainer>
              <element elementId="92">
                <name>Text</name>
                <description/>
                <elementTextContainer>
                  <elementText elementTextId="85505">
                    <text>CASPER

\fAtZCT CtUEBE
WYOMING

Chulenee

�CHALLENGE—In every academic discipline,
to study, to think, to express clearly one’s knowledge and
understanding in suitable written forms.

�:yW» ' '•

-"i
&lt;s

Challenge
liii
Published at Casper Community College
Casper, Wyoming 82601
February, 1989

Copyright by Casper Community College

SPECIAL Collections
CASPEP COl lEOK ■r.p.^y

s.J

ni 5:..'^??

�Challenge: 1989

«

Table of Contents
Helping Behavior as a Function of Gender of Subject
and Confederate Karen iVare ....................................... 5
My Philosophy of Education

Peggy King ............................... 10

Computerized Motor Control

Tim Gardner ............................. 12

Speech in Tribute

Tanna J. Trout....................................... 18

Fixed Against the Wind

David Bovie.................................................................... 20

Themes, Styles and Contrasts in Behind a Mask: The Unknown Thrillers
of Louisa May Alcott Don Claunch ................................ 23
Problems Affecting the Homeless
Know Thyself

Daniel Meyers.......... ...................................... 32

Cherie Ktoefkorn ............................................................................ 35

Cover design executed by Eric Valdez

�Introduction
Casper College is pleased to present the third issue of Challengey a magazine to
honor excellence. As a display medium for academic endeavor» Challenge solicits
superior examples of student writing from all college disciplines; our purpose is to
illustrate both the breadth and depth of course work on our campus. Instructors have
selected representative writing from their courses, and, though we do not include pieces
from writing classes, we encourage all forms: exams, reports, essays, term papers.
This issue represents work submitted in response to the call for papers for two
semesters, spring 1988 and fall 1988.

Arlene Larson, editor
Casper College
Casper, Wyoming
Spring, 1989

�Helping Behavior as a
Function of Gender of Subject
and Confederate
By Karen Ware
Course: Introduction to Behavioral Research
Instructor: Robert Wilkes
Students were provided with a brief introduction concerning altrustic behavior and gender. Collectively,
the class developed a researchable hypothesis, formulated a research design suitable for testing the hypothesis
and collected data. Each individual was then required to perform appropriate statistical analysis, develop
conclusions and present the findings in American Psychological Association journal style.

“no-help” time if he/she did not. Analysis showed no
significant influences (F(3,18)=I.2O1, p
.05) although

Abstract

The hypothesis that the gender of a person requesting help

means and standard deviations indicated certain trends.

and of the person being asked for help would influence helping

Research has indicated that helping behaviour
can be influenced by a number of factors. The
effect of the appearance of the person requesting
help has been widely studied: Emswiller, Deaux,
and Willits (1971) found that subjects were more
willing to lend a dime for a phone call to a

behavior was investigated; A 2x2 factorial design was utilized.

Time measurements of subjects’ response to request for help
were taken. A confederate was seated in a college snack bar

with a leg brace on his/her leg and crutches well in view, and
asked a passerby if he/she would return his/her tray to the
dishwasher. An experimenter timed the interaction. Subject

was assigned a “help” time if he/she took the tray, and a

5

�The independent variables were determined to be
the gender of the confederate and the gender of
the subject. The dependent variable was
determined to be the time it took the subject to
respond.
The experiment took place in the snack bar in
the Student Center of Casper College. This was
determined to be an appropriate area in which
to conduct the experiment because there was a
relatively constant flow of traffic at ail times, and
patrons were usually not daily “regulars,” as they
would be at the main campus cafeteria (it was
believed that patrons who were “regulars” would
witness data collection too often to avoid
suspicion). The experimenter was seated at a
small private table next to the back exit of the
snack bar, pretending to be studying, in a position
that facilitated observation and measurement of
response times. The confederate was seated with
his/her back to the experimenter, facing the main
section of the snack bar, in the middle table of
the “no-smoking” section near the exit. The
confederate wore a leg brace and had crutches
well in view to legitimize the request for help. A
cafeteria tray with empty dishes was on the
confederate’s table. Times for data collection were
randomly assigned from 7:00-8:00 a.m., 9:00-11:00
a.m., and 2:00-5:00 p.m., corresponding to the
working hours of the snack bar. The hours of
8:(X)-9:00 a.m. and 11:00 a.m.-l:00 p.m. were
determined to be “high-traffic” limes and so
were not used in the study to avoid suspicion of
the patrons.
A subject was determined to be any individual
meeting established selection criteria, walking
past the confederate, from the main snack bar
area toward the door, appearing to be leaving.
The subject had to have at least one hand free,
be unknown to the confederate, and be alone The
request for help was made as soon as the subject
reached a point 10 feet from the confederate The
request was as such: “Would you mind taking my
tray back to the dishwasher for me, please?”
Helping was defined as the act of the subject
taking the tray as if to return it, and non-helping

confederate whose appearance differed from the
subject’s own. Wilson and Dovidio (1985)
discovered that when asking for money for a
phone call, an attractive female confederate
dressed in a feminist manner received less help
than an attractive confederate dressed in a
traditional manner. However, unattractive
feminists and traditionalists received the same
amount of help. In an analysis of various
experiments, Steblay (1987) found that location
is also a factor in helping behavior: helping was
more likely to occur in a nonurban than an urban
environment. In addition, it has been found that
a direct request for aid tends to increase the
frequency of helping behavior, while an indirect
request or no request at all tends to inhibit
helping (Goldman, Broil, and Carrill, 1983;
Wilson, 1980). Concerning gender as an influence
on helping, Emswiller et al (1971) found that
males received more help than females when
asking for a dime, while Simon (1971) found that
female confederates received more help than male
confederates when pretending to have reached a
wrong number in an attempt to call an auto
repair shop, though the gender of the subject
seemed to make no difference.
This study incorporated a direct request for
help to discover possible effects of the gender of
the confederate and of the gender of the subject
on helping behavior. It was believed that males
would be more likely to help females than to help
other males, but that females would not help
either sex more often.
Method
Subjects
Subjects consisted of patrons of a college snack
bar; 14 males and 8 females participated. Subjects
were not rewarded in any tangible manner and
were treated in accordance with the “Ethical
Principles of Psychologists” (American
Psychological Association, 1981).

Procedure
This experiment utilized a 2x2 factorial design.

6

�was defined as the act of the subject walking 10
feet past the confederate without taking the tray.
Timing by the experimenter was begun as soon
as the request was made. Timing was stopped
either when the subject took the tray as if to
return it (helping behavior) or when the subject
reached a point 10 feet past the confederate,
toward the door (no-help behavior). (Since the
confederate was equidistant from the starting and
ending points for timing, it was thought that this
would provide an accurate time index for those
subjects who did not help.) Subjects who helped
were stopped before they actually returned the
tray and were debriefed. Subjects who did not
help were followed by the experimenter and
debriefed after their time was recorded.
Procedures were accomplished as subtly as
possible to avoid attracting the attention of the
other patrons.
Debriefing those subjects who helped consisted
of (a) telling him/her that an experiment was
being conducted on helping behavior and he/she
had just performed as a subject, (b) asking
him/her not to discuss the experiment with
anyone, and (c) thanking him/her for
participating. Debriefing those subjects who did
not help was the same as for those who did help,
but it was added that (a) the experiment was an
attempt to develop a technique to get people to
respond to a help request, (b) it was thought that
a simple request is not enough to illicit help
because there are too many other variables
involved, and (c) the subject’s behavior was
typical of the general public. (This was to avoid
any psychological damage to the subject when
he/she was “caught” not helping, and to insure
th6 dignity and psychological well-being of the
subject.) The non-helping subject was also asked
if he/she heard the request for help, to allow the
experimenter to judge if the data from this
subject could be used.

subject was recorded in a block according to
his/her experimental condition: male confederate/male subject; male confederate/female
subject; female confederate/male subject; female
confederate/female subject (see Appendix A). An
average time and standard deviation was
calculated for each condition (see Ihble 1).

Results
The response time measurement for each

with male confederates, with the quickest overall
helping time for total female subjects.
Scores were examined for statistical

Table 1
Means and Standard Deviations
for Helping Behavior
SD
Condition
n
M
Male Confederate/
Male Subject
6
4.63 2.06
Male Confederate/
2
2.55 0.495
Female Subject
Female Confederate/
3.54 1.54
Male Subject
8
Female Confederate/
6
Female Subject
3.55 0.758
note: all time measured in seconds

Additionally, means and standard deviations for
total male confederates, total female
confederates, total male subjects, and total female
subjects were calculated (see Table 2). Inspection
of Ibbles 1 and 2 indicate a slightly slower helping
time for male subjects with male confederates,
a slightly faster helping time for female subjects

Table 2

Means and Standard Deviations
for Helping Behavior
n
M
Condition
Male Confederate Total
8
4.11
3.54
Female Confederate Total 14
14
4.01
Male Subject Total
Female Subject Total
8
3.30
note: all times measured in seconds

7

SD
1.99
1.22
3.30
0.81

�significance with an Analysis of Variance test (see
Appendix B). Non-helping times (n = 3) were
analyized with helping times (n = 19) due to actual
response time constituting the dependent
variable. Analysis revealed a statistically non­
significant difference [F(3,18)=1.201, p&gt; .5; see
Table 3]. demonstrating lack of support for the
hypothesis.

nonsignificant (see Thble 3). Previous studies have
indicated that the gender of the confederate can
increase amount of help given, but there is
disagreement as to which gender receives more
help, males or females (Emswiller, 1971; Simon,
1971). Results of this particular experiment,
however, do not support the hypothesis. This
indicates that the design of this experiment could
be altered to improve internal and external
validity.
First, more subjects could be used to increase
the number of scores. Only 22 subjects
participated, and in the male confederate/female
subject condition, only two time scores were
achieved. A higher N may more readily indicate
differences among groups.
Also, since there were only three subjects who
did not help at all, perhaps the manipulation was
too strong. The presence of the crutches and leg
brace may have elicited a sympathy response from
subjects that may not normally occur, increasing
the speed with which some reacted. However,
without an easily identifyable reason for the
confederate to ask a subject for help, subjects
may have become suspicious.
One definite problem with an experiment such
as this is operationally defining the dependent
variable. If helping was considered as taking the
tray, and non-helping as passing by the
confederate, this poses this problem of how to
assign a time to a non-helper. One alternative is
to arbitrarly assign a time (such as 10 seconds)
for all non-helpers, but too large a value might
produce a statistical significance that is not truly
meaningful. Another alternative is to take the
average amount of helping time and double it,
assigning this value to the non-helpers, but again,
this is fairly arbitrary and may pose analytical
problems. Analyzing all time data together
allowed inspection of length of time it took to
help, but simply because the distance traveled for
a “help” time was shorter than the distance
traveled for a “no-help” time does not mean that
“help” times will necessarily be faster—some
non-helpers may walk much more quickly than

Table 3
for Helping Behavior
Source of Variation
SS df MS F-index
Treatment
8.17
3 2.72
1.20
Error
40.77 18 2.27
Total
48.94 21
*P &lt; .05
Discussion
Even though the findings of this experiment
were not statistically significant, results showed
some trends of the effect of gender on helping
behavior, and thus were in support of the research
finds of other researchers such as Emswiller et
al. (1971) and Simon (1971). However, it was
found that male subjects tended to help female
confederates more quickly than they helped male
confederates. Female subjects also seemed to help
female confederates more quickly, though the
difference is not as large as with male subjects
(see Table 1). Additionally, the means for both
the total male confederates and total male
subjects were slower than for total female
confederates or total female subjects (see Thble
2). It would seem that perhaps males are more
uncomfortable helping other males than helping
females, though females do not appear to have
any tendency to shy away from helping their own
gender. This may be a reflection of traditional
roles of society, whereby males are more
accustomed to aiding females and aren’t as
accustomed to being asked for help by a male,
while females traditionally have incorporated a
more nurturing (possibly helping) role in society.
Statistical analysis, however, proved

8

�helpers. Therefore, slower times do not necessarily
mean less help.
Though this experiment did not demonstrate
statistical support for the hypothesis, mean
scores indicate a tendency for gender to affect
helping behavior. Design changes made to this
experiment might provide statistically significant

differences in accord with previous studies.
Studies such as this one could be of value in the
real world by indicating what kind of request is
more likely to illicit helping behavior, and also,
what kind of help one can expect in certain
circumstances.

Works Cited

American Psychological Association. (1981). Ethical principles of psychologists (revised). American Psychologist. 36. 633-638
[From Publication Manual of the American Psychologist. (1988) Lancaster, PA Lancaster Press. Inc.)
Emswiller, T., Deaux, K.. Willits, J. E. (1971). Similarity, sex, and requests for small favors. Journal of Applied Social Psychology,
1(3). 284-291

Goldman, M., Broil, R., Carrill, R. (1983). Request for help and prosocial behavior. Journal of Social Psychology, 119, 55-59
Simon, W. E. (1971) Helping behavior in the absence of eye contact as a function of sex of person asking for help and sex

of person being asked by help. Psychological Reports 28, 609-610
Steblay, N. M. (1987). Helping behavior in rural and urban environments: A meu-analysis. Psychological Bulletin 102(3), 346-356
Wilson, D. (1980). Ambiguity and helping behavior. Journal of Social Psychology. 112, 155-156

Wilson, M., Dovidio, J. F. (1985) Effects of perceived attractiveness and feminist orientation on helping behavior. Journal of
Social Psychology, 125(4), 415-420

9

�My Philosophy of Education
By Peggy King
Course: Foundations of Education
Instructor: Charlene Davis
The student was to write a short paper discussing her personal philosophy of education. She could choose
to align herself with one of the four educational philosophies—F^rennialism, Essentialism, Progressivism,
or Existentialism—or with any combination of these philosophies.

I am having a great deal of trouble trying to
define and label my philosophy of education. I
do have some strong feelings about some aspects
of education, however, so I will attempt to outline
those and then see if they fit into one particular
school of thought.
It is easier for me to begin by saying what I
do not believe in. I do not find much in the
Existentialist school of thought that would be of
great value to me in a school setting; it seems too
abstract. Wouldn’t an existentialist outlook lead
to a form of anarchy? I do not feel, as do the
Progressivists, that young students are capable of
judging what should or should not be in a
curriculum. The planning, in my opinion, should

be left up to the teacher. I am beginning to
see that I lean towards a teacher-centered, or
authoritarian view.
1 do not believe that any one religion should
be taught in school. I feel strongly, however, that
all children should be exposed to all of the
world’s so-called “Great Religions’’ I think that
this exposure would lead to greater tolerance of
those who have different beliefs from our own.
Many Americans are very intolerant of other
religions and races; this is of great concern to me.
I find the Perennialist view a bit too rigid and
inflexible. I fear that it would be easy to place
too much emphasis on the classics, to the
exclusion of current subject matter that could
10

�also be valuable. I would definitely teach the
classics in my classroom, but I would also
emphasize current events, math, science,
geography and foreign languages. The more !
write, the more 1 realize how strong my concern
is for developing tolerance and an appreciation
for other cultures in our children. I am absolutely
appalled at how little today’s students know
about geography. Closely related to that is the
fact that very few Americans are fluent in any
foreign language. Nearly all foreign school
systems require their elementary students to learn
a foreign language, usually English. Wouldn’t it
be wonderful if an American president could
speak Russian? If humans are to survive as a
species, there needs to be much more tolerance,
understanding and communication among the
world’s peoples. Knowledge of a foreign language
can also help one gain understanding of the
English language, as many of our words come
from other languages. 1 have often wished that
I had taken Latin.
Science and technology must be a part of any
school’s curriculum. Mind boggling advances
have been made in both areas and our society is
becoming more technical every day. Children
must be exposed to computers, as nearly all
phases of our economy use them. I was not
taught how to use a computer, so I am now
somewhat fearful of them (“computer illiterate,’’
I believe it is called). Many children dislike science
and there seems to be somewhat of an anti­
science attitude in America, which I find most
unfortunate. So many wondrous things are
happening right under our noses every day, but
one cannot appreciate them without some
scientific knowledge.
I would require my students to become
competent writers. Writing seems to be a lost art
in our society. Children are often very poetic and
they need to know how to transfer their thoughts
to paper. Just having them keep a daily journal,
as my current practicum teacher does, is a good
start. I remember being required to write many
essays and papers throughout my schooling and

I am very thankful for that now (though I wasn’t
at the time)!
1 would use a system of rewards for positive
behavior. I have seen this done in my daughter’s
classroom and in my practicum teacher’s
classroom. It seems to be a very effective method
of controlling the cassroom and of eliciting
desired behavior from the children. I am not sure
which of the education philosophies allows for
such a system, however.
1 would also like to see a daily dose of physical
education in my classroom. Brains function more
efficiently when bodies are exercised. Important
rules about how to function as a team and how
to work in a group can be learned In physical
education classes. Good conduct and
sportsmanship are also very important side­
benefits. I was fortunate to attend schools that
immersed me in everything from archery to
soccer. It distresses me to see children sitting in
front of television sets having both their bodies
and their minds numbed. As a general rule,
people feel better physically and mentally when
they exercise regularly.
Eureka! My powers of inductive reasoning tell
me that an Essentialist is emerging from these
ramblings. Being forced to write all of this down
has been very helpful to me in clarifying my
thoughts about curricula.
In summary, I feel, as the Essentialists do, that
the classics and the “3-R’s’’ are extremely
important and should form the basis of a child’s
education. In addition, we must not neglect
foreign languages, science and physical
education. I like the Essentialist idea of leaving
room for currently useful topics in one’s
curriculum. 1 believe that all of us should be
versed in many areas so that we can all be useful
citizens. It is extremely difficult to maintain a
democracy when the public is poorly educated.
Finally, 1 feel that intelligent choices and
decisions come much more easily to those people
who have had exposure to the subjects that I have
discussed.
11

�Computerized Motor Control
By Tim Gardner
Course: Microprocessors IJI
Instructor: David Arndt
The assignment was to construct a digital to analog control circuit to drive a DC motor at variable speeds.
The D/A converter circuit had to be driven through a parallel port of an 8-bit microprocessor system. The
student also had to write a program that monitored a parallel port connected to a series of eight control
switches. Each switch would drive the motor at a different speed. The program monitors the port connected
to the switches, reads the input word, converts the input word to another binary word, and ships this word
out through another port to the motor control circuit. The student had to analyze the program and explain
how it worked. He also needed to explain how the motor control circuit worked and how the computer’s
program manipulated the motor control circuit.

Calling Program:
MVI A,00
OUT 2F
MVI A.FF
OUT 2E
These commands utilize Immediate (MVI A,00
&amp; MVI A.FF) and Register Direct (OUT 2E &amp;
OUT 2F). MVI A,00 immediately loads the
accumulator with the data 00. Utilizing I/O
mapping, OUT 2F places the contents of the
accumulator on the eight bit bi-directional data

bus for transmission to the specified port. In this
instance the specified port is the DDR B, which
is located at address location 2F. The data 00,
which is presently located in the accumulator, will
configure the entire DDR B as an input. In the
8255 each bit can be configured as either an input
or an output. For this particular experiment we
want the entire eight bits of the DDR to be
configured as an input to receive the inputs from
the keypad as each key is pressed. MVI A,FF
immediately loads the accumulator with the data
FF. Once again utilizing I/O mapping, OUT 2E

12

�places the contents of the accumulator on the
eight-bit bi-directional data bus for transmission
to the specified port. The port specified in this
case is the DDR A, which is located at address
2E. The data FF, which is currently in the
accumulator, will configure each bit of the DDR
A as an output. As in the DDR B each bit of the
DDR can be configured as either an input or an
output. They are all configured as an output in
this case, although the upper bits D4-D7 will not
be utilized in the performance of this program.
Only the lower bits D0-D3 are utilized to control
the motor in this exercise.

Immediate addressing. MVI C,08 immediately
loads the C register with the data 08. This register
will be utilized as the counter for the key search
routine where the program will search for the key
that has been pressed up to a maximum of eight
times. MVI D,00 immediately loads the D register
with the data 00. This is done primarily to ensure
that no erroneous data can possibly enter into
the program. MVI E,00 immediately loads the E
register with the data 00. The E register will be
used in this program to vector the program to the
appropriate location where the data for speed
control of the motor is located. This is
accomplished by placing the contents of the E
register into the low byte address of the H&amp;L pair
which is loaded with the address of the data block
which contains the data for controlling the speed
of the motor.

CALL 3100
JMP 300B
These commands utilize combined (CALL
3100) and Immediate (JMP 300B) addressing.
CALL 3100 stacks the program counter, reloads
the program counter with the given address,
jumps to that location and performs the
subroutine located there, reloads the program
counter with the original address and returns to
the calling program. The subroutine which is
called here is the motor control subroutine
whereby the input data from the keypad, as
indicated by the switch position, is input through
Port B, analyzed and shipped out to the motor
through Port A to control the speed of the motor.
JMP 300B jumps to address location 300B each
time the program is returned to the calling
program from the subroutine. This is necessary
for the system to evaluate each press of the
keypad to send the appropriate data to the motor
to control its speed. There is no subroutine called
to return the microprocessor to an active mode;
therefore the reset button must be pressed to reset
the CPU when the various steps and readings are
completed for this exercise.

IN 2D
JC 3200
STA 3012
DCR C
INR E
JNZ 310B
RAR
RET
These commands constitute the loop whereby
the keysearch program is performed. Addressing
modes utilized are as follows: Register Direct (IN
2D, STA 3012), Register Implied (INR E, DCR
C), Immediate, (JC 3200, JNZ 3I0B), and
Register Indirect (RET). In 2D takes the data
placed on the 8-bit bi-directional data bus by the
specified port and moves it into the accumulator.
The specified port in this case is Port B, which
was configured in the calling program as an
input. Whenever a key is struck on the keypad,
the corresponding data will be input to Port B
in the Binary form of the word. This is
accomplished by the keypad whenever the keys
are pressed, and finally to the Port B which is
the input. This 5 V Vcc is seen by the port as a
high level and the corresponding binary word is
placed where it can be utilized to locate the
appropriate message to send to the motor to slow
it down or speed it up. STA 3012 stores the
contents of the accumulator at address location
3012. This particular command is not utilized in

Keysearch Subroutine:
MVI C,08
MVI D,00
MVI E,00
The addressing mode utilized here is

13

�this program, but was inserted for the next
program on security systems which will use the
same keysearch program. INR E increments the
contents of the E register by I. The E register is
utilized here for the purpose of storing the
number from 1-8 which has been pressed on the
keypad. RAR rotates the contents of the
accumulator right one position through the carry
flag. The high order bit is set to the carry flag
and the carry flag is set to the value shifted out
of the low-order bit. This is done until the carry
bit is at a high level at which time the carry flag
will be set. As the RAR command is performed
the contents of the E register is incremented by
1 each step of the rotation until the carry flag
is set and the program jumps to the subroutine
which will locate the appropriate data to send to
the motor to control its speed. JC 3200 jumps
to address location 3200 when the carry flag is
set by the prior command. The subroutine
located at this address performs the movement
function that will send the appropriate motor
control data to the motor. DCR C decrements the
contents of the C register by 1. This register is
used as the count for the keysearch and the
decrementation is necessary to ensure that the
proper count is made in the keysearch subroutine.
JNZ 310B jumps to address location 310B and
performs the subroutine until such time as the
contents of the C register are zero, at which time
the zero flag will be set and the program will
continue with the next program command. RET
returns the program to the calling program where
it will hold with the motor running at the last
programmed speed until such time as a new
keypad is struck and the process is started all over
again. This program is not returned to an active
mode unless the reset button is hit.

These commands constitute the subroutine
whereby the data is picked up from the memory
location to control the speed of the motor.
Addressing modes used are as follows: Immediate
(LXI H,4000), Register Direct (MOV L,E, OUT
2C), and Register Indirect (MOV A,M, RET).
LXl H,40(X) immediately loads the H&amp;L register
pair with the address location 4000. This is the
address location where the data to control the
speed of the motor was stored prior to the initial
input of the main program. MOV L,E moves the
contents of the E register into the L register. The
E register contents are the data for the count up
in the previous subroutine. As the keysearch
subroutine loops through the program to find the
correct key that was pressed, the contents of the
E register is incremented with each subroutine
where the data from the E register is then moved
into the L register. This register, being the lowbyte address location of the H&amp;L pair, sets the
low-byte address to whatever data is currently in
the E register. This vectors the memory location
to the proper address location in the 4000 block
to pick up the appropriate data to speed up or
slow down the motor. MOV A,M moves the data
at the memory location indicated by the H&amp;L
pair into the accumulator where it is then stored.
OUT 2C takes the data located in the
accumulator and places it on the 8-bit bi­
directional data bus for shipment to the specified
port. The port specified in this command is Port
A, located at address location 2C. The DDR for
this port was configured in the calling program
as an output. The data located in the accumulator
is the HEX data that will control the speed of
the motor. This Hex number is converted to a
binary count and shipped out Port A through
S02, through the summing circuit and finally to
the motor itself which will then either slow down
or speed up according to the data which is
output. This summing circuit will act as a voltage
divider. In other words, the motor will run at full
speed only when the data OF is picked up from
the data block. A0-A3 are the only address lines
being utilized for this program. As the data is

Motor Control Subroutine:
LXl H,4000
MOV L,E
MOV A,M
OUT 2C
RET

14

�converted to the binary number and shipped, the
corresponding data line will go high which will
send the voltage across the resistor tied to that
data line and combine with the other voltages
coming across the summing circuit to control the
speed of the motor. At OF all of the data lines
will go high driving the motor at full speed. All
other inputs will drive the motor at
correspondingly slower speeds until key #1 is
pressed, at which time the data picked up will be
00 and the motor will shut off. RET returns the
microprocessor to the calling program where it
will again wait for another key to be pressed and
the program will start all over again.

4) Explain the purpose of the “look-up table.''
The look-up table is utilized to store the data
that will control the speed of the motor. It is
stored in the table as a Hex number and will be
converted to the binary equivalent when it is
called upon for shipment through the output
port. Also, the look-up table is necessary as a
reference point for the key that is pressed on the
keypad. The keypad itself cannot control the
speed of the motor because each key pressed only
sends approximately 5 volts to the input at port
B. This must be analyzed and interpreted to
determine which control is desired, either a speed
up or slow down.

Questions
2) Analyze and explain the operation of the DC
motor summing circuit.
As the data is sent out through Port A to the
summing circuit, the data lines A0-A3 will exert
either a high or low input to the resistor on the
data line to which it is connected. This gives a
voltage drop across the resistor. The voltages will
add together, hence the name summing circuit,
at the inverting input to the op-amp. The non­
inverting input of the op-amp is connected to
ground reference. The op-amp itself is connected
in a differential configuration. It therefore will
amplify the difference between the inverting and
non-inverting inputs. The feedback resistor is
utilized to feed a portion of the output back to
the inverting input to help stabilize the
amplification of the signal. The amplified signal
is then applied to the motor to slow it down or
speed it up.
3) Does the motor current change with respect
to the output voltage of the op-amp? If so
why?
The chart shows us that as the output voltage
of the op-amp increases so too does the motor
current. This is because, as the input voltage to
the motor increases, the input impedance of the
motor increases and therefore there will be a
corresponding increase in the current drawn by
the motor.

Conclusions
This lab proved to be a very interesting lab to
perform. We have seen how the microprocessor
can be utilized in industrial applications for
controlling the speed of motors. One of the
problems encountered during this exercise was in
getting the motor to run. We found that the
current output of the op-amp was not enough to
drive the motor. To correct this we placed a
current amplifying transistor on the output of the
op-amp to boost the current so the motor would
run. This, however, presented another problem.
We found that when the motor was run at full
speed, or at low speeds for a longer period of
time, the transistor would start to overheat. After
trying a different combination of resistors to raise
the input impedance to the motor, we finally
decided on the original set-up with heat sinks
connected to the transistor to prevent it from
burning up. As a final step to the experiment, the
following shows the input impedance of the
motor at each successive step of the motor as the
speed was increased.

STEP I:=E/I=0/0=0 (motor off)
STEP 2: = E/I = 1.67 V/440 mA = 3.8 ohms
STEP 3: = E/I = 1.34 V/430 mA = 3.12 ohms

STEP 4: = E/I = 2.45 V/470 mA = 5.21 ohms
STEP 5: = E/I = 2.88 V/480 mA=6 ohms

15

�STEP 6: = E/I = 3.99 V/520 mA = 7.67 ohms
STEP 7; = E/I=4.52 V/530 mA = 8.53 ohms
STEP 8: = E/I=6.48 V/610 mA = 10.82 ohms
(motor at full speed)

correlation between the motor speed and the
impedance of the motor. This is also the reason
we had overheating of the transistor in the circuit.
As the speed of the motor increased, the current
drawn also increased, thereby causing an excessive
draw on the transistor. That is why it was
necessary to heat sink the transistor to prevent
damaging it.

As can be seen by the above data, as the motor
voltage and current increases so too does the
impedance of the motor. This shows a direct

16

�X

T
ca

J* T

itKaaaftT
• ‘X'SB-Xl

Msjm_____ .

»u«woon ■«TB

noaiNoo HOxcH

•t»TJ
sss MiTa

�Speech in Tribute
By Tanna 1 Trout
Course: Public Speaking
Instructor: Gale Alexander
The assignment was to give a speech in tribute to an individual. The speech was delivered from an outline,
but written in manuscript form for publication here.

When she was 12 years old, she returned from
school and approached the door of her parents’
business. This small department store had been
a scene of success and affluence. When she
entered, Hilde’s father told her that just a few
minutes earlier soldiers had entered and taken
possession of everything. Not only had her family
lost its life work, but they could lose their lives
as well.
This is the beginning of the nightmare that my
mother-in-law, Hilde, would have to endure. The
place was Vienna, Austria, the year was 1938, the
soldiers were Nazi S. S. Storm Troopers ... and
she was a Jew.
Efforts were immediately undertaken to get the

necessary paperwork to flee to the United States.
Time ran out as Austrian police came to get her
father along with other Jewish men in her
apartment building. Within hours her mother
had booked passage to China, the only country
open to enter without a visa. Hilde’s father
managed to bribe his captors for a few days of
freedom and they all fled in the night with four
dollars apiece, leaving behind not only their
personal possessions and heirlooms but also her
grandparents, aunts, uncles and cousins.
Arriving in Shanghi, China, one month later,
Hilde found living conditions beyond belief. Raw
sewage filled the streets with stench. Infected
water and food were a constant threat. Rats
18

�Hilde came with her husband to Wyoming and
began the difficult task of building her life during
the post war years. She raised three children. But
Hitler was not finished with Hilde’s family. Her
mother’s deepening depression required Hilde to
care for her each day while Hilde’s father worked.
This continued for ten years until her mother’s
death.
Many years ago, I became her daughter-in-law
and in that time, I have come to know a woman
whose character is a model for all she meets. She
Stans each day grateful to be alive, cherishing her
loved ones. Hilde’s generosity extends far beyond
the material gifts she so enjoys giving, to
unselfish donations of time, energy and devotion
to family and friends. She is a champion of
freedom and hope.
When I think of living for years in fear of every
knock at the door, emotionally battered by often
vicious captors, I feel most people would live out
their lives in bitterness. But instead from a harsh,
harsh beginning she brings to life a rare softness.
When she holds her grandchild, it’s not just
another grandmother holding her grandchild, its
as if she is embracing the million and a half
Jewish children who died at the hands of Nazi
Germany not so long ago, not so far away.

roamed everywhere. Lepers were commonplace.
Dead Chinese babies lay in the gutters.
Needing to survive, they began another
business. Again utilizing the talents of the family,
they began a very small factory producing
uniforms. For the next two years Hilde helped the
family piece their lives together.
In 1941, the Army of Japan occupied Shanghi
and again Hilde and her family were forced from
their home. The business was seized and they were
imprisoned in a ghetto with 20,000 other Jews.
For the next three years she survived these
conditions, one of which included a bombing in
her ghetto when many friends were killed. Hilde
and the other teenagers were forced by the
Japanese to excavate the bodies of their friends
from the rubble, a memory which haunts her to
this day.
In 1945, at the end of the war in the Pacific,
she received information of the status of her
family left behind in Europe seven years earlier.
Her grandparents, aunts, uncles and all but two
cousins had been murdered.
It was in 1945 she met her future husband, a
U. S. Army soldier, and moved to the United
States. After a great deal of effort and two years
time, she brought her parents to this country.

19

�Fixed Against the Wind
By David Bovie
Course: Ethics
Instructor: Dr. Robert Carlson
The student was to read an excerpt from The Prince, then assume a meeting five hundred years later
with Oliverotto, a meeting in which Oliverotto defends his action. The student was to write an essay to
convince Oliverotto that justice is the habit of giving someone his due (right); that he ought to practice
justice willingly; and that justice will lead to happiness.

The captain and crew of a ship afloat in the
vast ocean need only wait for a storm to realize
the importance of an anchor. The ship will be lost
to the turbulent waves, or get smashed against
the shore long before reaching its intended
destination. So it is with human affairs. Without
an anchor, humans become as lost as a schooner
round the bend of Good Hope. Three aspects of
this “anchorship” are necessary in regard to
human values such as truth, justice, and
happiness. First, values must be objective as
opposed to subjective. An objective value is one
that is unchanged by the way people think about
it. Next, values ought to be absolute and not
relative, meaning that something is true or just

for its own sake. Nothing is comparatively true.
Truth is not dependent but independent. The last
quality of an anchored value is that it must be
universal instead of particular. Everyone must be
affected by it in the same way. Without all three
qualities, the value becomes moveable, and men
can make up their own rules of behavior. A good
example of this is in Machiavelli’s book. The
Prince. A minor character in the book named
Oliverotto kills his uncle and all the leading
citizens of the city of Fermo. He then siezes
control of the city.
In Plato’s book. The Republic, Thrasymachus
defines justice as “the interest of the stronger.”
Applying this definition, Oliverotto would have
20

�no difficulty justifying his act of barbarism.
Socrates, later on in The Republic, gives a counter
definition of justice. His definition states that
justice is “the habit of giving someone his due
or right.’’ If one can prove the superiority of this
latter definition, then Oliverotto’s act should be
universally condemned.
In order to prove the truth of Socrates’
definition of justice, one must begin with the
concept of the difference between real and
apparent goods. A good is something which one
desires. Real goods are those things which are
essential to every man’s nature. Man’s nature is
his essence, or that which makes up man. If one
is kept from even one of these real goods all of
his life, his nature will be unfulfilled or altered.
Some of the real goods are health, wealth,
pleasure, social interaction, and knowledge.
Apparent goods are those things people want for
their own sakes. It is through man’s
understanding of what is essential to all other
men that a sense of man’s natural debt to other
men ensues. Adler said it best. “ ... only by the
individual’s knowing what is really good for
himself can he know what is really good for other
men, too, and only through knowing this can he
determine what an individual’s rights are—rights
that ought to be secured by society and respected
by other men.’’ Thus, there is a debt between men
and between society and man. This is the basis
for the natural rights of man, or Jefferson’s
“unalienable rights.’’ When one man is denied
these basic rights, bodies of men call that unjust.
Justice, in an objective definition, rests on the
notion of natural rights for man. Justice is the
habit of giving someone his due or right.
Oliverotto would not like the implication of
this argument. Since the Socratic definition of
justice is the true one, Oliverotto’s crime of
murdering his uncle is violable. But Oliverotto
does have a logical rejoiner. “Do all men pay
their debts?’’ This implies that since most men
do not pay all their debt to other men, why
should one practice justice at all? The
proposition to examine, then, is whether one

ought to practice justice willingly.
In order to understand the proposition, certain
words must be defined. “Justice,” of course, is
defined in the Socratic manner. “Ought”
designates a complusion to act in a certain
manner. Adler clarifies this further. “The word
‘ought’ expresses the notion of a duty or an
obligation. We have a duty or an obligation to
do what we ought to do.” “Willingly” allows no
misunderstanding that the proposition, if true,
would be carried out with no restraint of the will.
This proposition is proven syllogistically. Most
would grant that man ought to desire that which
is really good for him. This is self evident. The
words “really good” might be vague to some.
This merely means that man should desire those
things essential to his nature (health, wealth,
pleasure, social interaction, and knowledge). The
next portion of the syllogism is an evidential
proposition. Justice is really good. This statement
asserts that justice satisfies one or more of the
real goods, and thus helps complete man’s nature.
Man must interact with man. John Donne said
it best. “No man is an island.” Social interaction
is a real good. Man must also interact with man
on an equal basis. Without such a basis between
men, the other real goods cannot be secured and
neither can man’s natural rights. Equality
between men concedes the notion of giving what
each man is due. Consequently, justice Is a real
good. If one should desire what is really good,
and justice is really good, then one ought to’
practice justice willingly.
Oliverotto, then, should not only practice
justice: he ought also to want to practice justice.
This, however, may not be enough for the
epicurean Oliverotto. He must know that leading
a just life will lead to his happiness.
To prove this, as usual, terms must first be
defined. Happiness, as Adler puts it, is “a whole
life enriched by the cumulative possession of all
the real goods that every human being needs and
by the satisfaction of those individual wants that
result in obtaining apparent goods that are
innocuous.” Justice has already been proven to

21

�be really good. To apply it to the definition of
happiness, one can say that justice is necessary
for the “cumulative possession of all the real
goods.’’ In other words, leading a just life will
lead to happiness.
“The doctrine of Thrasymachus, where it is
generally accepted, makes the existence of an
orderly community entirely dependent upon the
direct physical force at the disposal of the
government,’’ wrote Bertrand Russell. He was
right. Without objective, absolute, and universal
values, no reason in the world exists why someone
should not steal, lie, cheat, or kill. Therein lies
the danger of a relative position. One maintains
the relativity of truth, contends Allan Bloom, out

of a desire to achieve a “higher good’’ of
openness. Relativists believe that to remain
flexible in their values leaves them open to other
cultures, even when some traditions of these
cultures are repugnant to anyone with any sense
of morality. This is in agreement with their idea
of democracy. Majorities aren’t right or wrong
and don’t have to be. It is the process that is
important. Most relativists, however, don’t see the
ramifications of their position. Without the
anchor of objective values, it is inevitable that a
government become a tyranny. The famous line
from a Bob Dylan song, “The answer is blowing
in the wind’’ is false. It should say that the answer
is fixed against the wind.

22

�Themes, Styles and Contrasts in
Behind a Mask: The Unknown
Thrillers of Louisa May Alcott
By Don Claunch
Course: American Literature I
Instructor: Carolyn Logan
The assignment was to read one of the authors in an assigned bibliography, then write a paper to consider
the following questions: Should this writer—because of her ideas or her skill as a writer—be included in
the canon of American Uterature? Should students of literature be as familiar with this writer as with writers
usually anthologized, writers usually considered the mainstays of American writing? What dimension does
this writer add to our study of American literature? Do you recommend that we read the author you chose?
Why or why not?

Selecting works for anthologies of American
literature is not an easy task. Choosing material
for an anthology must be, at least, very difficult
simply because of the large number of works
available for selection. Some works are nearly
always included, and rightfully so. But should a
student of American literature be exposed to only
these standard works? I think not, and I believe
that Behind a Mask: The Unknown Thrillers of
Louisa May Alcott should be included in the

regular collections of American literature. My
careful examination of this collection has revealed
themes relevant today, developed with Alcott’s
unique style of character construction. Although
not perfect in all aspects, the stories in Behind
a Mask are an interesting contrast to the
interpretive writings commonly found in
American literature anthologies. Based on three
factors—theme, style, and contrast to other
works—Louisa May Alcott’s Behind a Mask

23

�should be anthologized with other works of
American literature.
Behind a Mask is a collection of four short
novels, only recently discovered as having been
written by Alcott. Published either anonymously
or under the pseudonym A. M. Barnard, the four
novelettes in the collection are “Behind a Mask,
or a Women’s Power,’’ “Pauline’s Passion and
Punishment,’’ “The Mysterious Key and What It
Opened,’’ and “The Abbot’s Ghost, or Maurice
Treherne’s Temptation.*’ Alcolt’s reason for
writing without using her own name is unknown,
and there is no reason given or evidence revealed
in the stories.
The first story in the collection, “Behind a
Mask, or a Women’s Power’’ published in 1866
under the pseudonym A. M. Barnard, is a tale
of a woman, Jean Muir, recently employed as a
governess by the Coventrys, a wealthy English
family. Jean Muir is not a governess but a
professional actress set on revenge against the
family which represents those things she despises.
She accomplishes her revenge with her marriage
to the patriarch of the old family.
“Pauline’s Passion and Punishment,’’
published anonymously in 1863, is similar to
“Behind a Mask’’ with a woman central
character bent on revenge. The story is set in the
exotic locations of Cuba where the central
character Pauline is abandoned by her lover, who
marries another woman. To accomplish her
revenge against the lover, Pauline marries a
young, wealthy, infatuated Cuban and uses her
new husband as a weapon against her former
lover. Pauline pursues her revenge to the
destruction of both herself and her former lover.
Published anonymously in 1867, “The
Mysterious Key’’ is a story with a male central
character named Paul. In the beginning of the
tale, Paul is a lower-class employee of the wealthy
English Trevlyn family. He eventually, through
acts of heroism, comes into his own riches and
social standing. The main idea of the plot is
Paul’s attempt and eventual success in securing
for his cousin Helen an inheritance which is

rightfully hers. This inheritance happens to be the
wealth of the Trevlyns, Paul’s former employer.
The final selection in Behind a Mask is the
novelette “The Abbot’s Ghost.’’ Published in
1867 under the pseudonym of A. M. Barnard, it
is the story of a wealthy English family and their
residence in an old English Abbey. The story’s
plot concerns Jasper and Maurice Treherne and
their love for Octavia, their cousin. Maurice
Treherne is crippled, a result of an accident in
which Maurice saved Jasper’s life. A mystery
unfolds in this story as it becomes evident that
Maurice is the rightful heir to the wealth and
family estate, but the inheritance has been
granted to Jasper, despite the fact that Jasper is
alive because of Maurice’s heroism. The mystery
is resolved in the end, and the inheritance
properly given back to Maurice.
An author incorporates themes into her work
based on her own feelings, beliefs, biases,
desires—essentially herself—and these recurring
themes tell the reader a great deal about the
author’s personal self. There are two major
recurring themes in the four novelettes. Alcott
placed strong recurring themes in her work, and
it is evident that these themes reflect Alcott’s
personal beliefs. But more than the fact that the
themes meant a lot to Alcott, the themes in
Behind a Mask are still relevant today. These
themes, their relevance today and Alcott’s strong
presentations of the themes have helped lead me
to the conclusion that her work should be
included in the regular collections of American
literature.
The strongest theme presented considers the
inequality between female and male, an
inequality not because of anatomical differences,
but due to social differences imposed by the
dominant males. Alcott’s theme indicates these
differences need to be destroyed. Women deserve
equality in all things, and the presense of
inequalities results in a struggle between men and
women. This theme is not presented in the
beginning of “Behind a Mask,’’ but laid out piece
by piece and Alcott builds upon it slowly to a
24

�challenge to the tournament so often held
between man and woman—a tournament
where the keen tongue is the lance, pride
the shield, passion the fiery steed, and the
hardest heart the winner of the prize which
seldom fails to prove a brazen honor,
ending in remorse (131).
The theme in “Pauline’s Passion” does not
deal with female-male inequality directly, but
with the unfair treatment many women encounter
from men, and a woman’s right to revenge. The
result is a “tournament so often held between
man and woman.” Strong words indicating a
strong belief, a belief which Alcott must have
held deeply.
“Behind a Mask” and Pauline’s Passion” are
very much alike in addressing the theme of the
female-male inequality: each has a female central
character; each woman is bent on revenge; each
woman uses men as “puppets” in their attempts
to achieve the goal; and each woman views the
male wealth and social standing as a prize which
fairly belongs to them. The third story in the
collection to present this theme differs
substantially. “The Mysterious Key” has a male
central character, Paul, who knowingly is being
used as a puppet. Paul is trying to secure an
inheritance for his cousin Helen, an inheritance
which is rightfully hers. This is not a story of
revenge, but a story of a female’s rights,
specifically the right to social standing, a title,
a name. After achieving her rightful title and
inheritance through the efforts of Paul, Helen
and Paul have the following exchange:
... with a slight tremor in her voice (Helen)
added, “Paul has done the work; he shall
have the (inheritance). 1 only want my
father’s name. Title and fortune are nothing
to one like me. I coveted and claimed them
that I might give them to you, Paul, my one
friend, so tender and so true.”
“I’ll have none of it,” he answered almost
fiercely. “I have kept my promise and I am
free You chose to claim your own, although
I offered all I had to buy your silence It

final climax. At the end of the first chapter Jean
Muir reveals “I’ll not fail again if there is power
in a woman’s wit and will’’ (11). The failure Jean
Muir is talking about is a past failure to achieve
what she believes is rightfully hers: money, social
standing and equality with men. Instead of
presenting her theme in the beginning of the
story, Alcott explores the Coventry family
affected by the mysterious power of Jean Muir.
A short statement of the theme of this story is
given in the final pages of the novelette as Jean
Muir admits in a letter to her friend “the young
Coventry is worth winning, but I prefer the title’’
(98). The title is held by old Sir John Coventry
and this title is Muir’s goal. Further in the letter,
she explains how she has won the prize of the
title; she shows her joy:
The enemy has surrendered! Give me joy,
Hortense; I can be the wife of this proud
monsieur, if I will. Think what an honor
for the divorced wife of a disreputable actor
... for I only wait till the prize I desire is
fairly mine ...” (101).
The central idea of this quotation, “the prize
I desire is fairly mine ...,” is another compact
statement of the theme of “Behind a Mask”:
equality is a prize which fairly belongs to women.
“Behind a Mask” is a strong story: the heroine
achieves her prize at the virtual destruction of an
entire family; Alcott constructs her story by
building on the theme piece by piece to the
climax.
In “Pauline’s Passion,” the theme “is an old
story, but it shall have a new ending” (116). Not
only is it an old story, but an old story relevant
today, one hundred twenty years later. The theme
is stated as a conflict between Pauline and her
former lover Gilbert. Pauline begins her revenge
against Gilbert by marrying Manuel; she presents
herself and her young, wealthy husband to her
former lover. Alcott then states the theme:
... the last generous feeling died in
Pauline’s breast; for as she received the
flowers, now changed from a love token to
a battle gage ... (she) silently accepted his

25

�is yours by right—take it, and enjoy it if you
can. I’ll have no reward for work like this.”
He turned from her with a look that
would have stricken her to the heart could
she have seen it. She felt it ... exclaiming
passionately, ‘‘Yes, I will keep it since I am
to lose all else. I am tired of pity. Power is
sweet, and I will use it ..” (206).
Helen accepts the wealth, title and name she
rightfully deserves and uses this newly acquired
power to restore Lady TYevlyn and her daughter
Lillian back to their state of wealth! This is an
act of compassion that Alcott’s characters did
not show in ‘‘Behind a Mask” and ‘‘Pauline’s
Passion,” and 1 believe this is a continuation of
the theme Alcott presents, with a twist: power
gained should be used compassionately. An
interesting parallel can be drawn between this
story and its theme with the present day situation
of children with divorced parents. Facts give the
details of the numbers of children essentially
abandoned by their fathers in today’s society.
They share a similar fate with Helen: they have
been abandoned by their fathers, do not share
in their fathers’ wealth, and they do not share in
any of their fathers’ heritages which are rightfully
theirs. Although she was writing for an audience
one hundred twenty years ago, Alcott’s themes
are relevant today.
The second recurring theme in Behind a Mask
is closely related to the first and deals with the
inequalities between the social classes and the
struggles between the classes. In each of the four
stories there is an explicit contrast between the
social classes. In ‘‘Behind a Mask,” Jean Muir
is a poor, homeless ‘‘divorced wife of a
disreputable actor” (101) upon whom ‘‘Poverty
seemed to have set its bond stamp” (6). In
‘‘Pauline’s Passion,” Pauline has neither title nor
inheritance. Paul is hired as the 'Revlyn’s gardener
in ‘‘The Mysterious Keyf’ In ‘‘The Abbot’s
Ghost” there is no leading character of low social
class, but there are striking contrasts between the
wealthy TYehernes and their servant staff. The
social classes are based on wealth: those who own

land employ those who don’t. The wealthy land
owner dominates the poorer laborer, and an
illusion is created that the wealthy are a better
and more perfect people.
This theme examining the difference between
the social classes is not as forcefully presented
as the theme addressing the female-male conflict.
But Alcott has some interesting and insightful
things to say about the social class structure
prevalent in her time. Although of a lower social
class than the Coventrys, Jean Muir has the
ability to convince them that she is not of lower
social class, but their equal; and she is only in
her present state due to some unfortunate
circumstance. Muir is an actress, she can play any
part, and the part she has chosen is one of high
social standing. In a scene with Jean Muir and
Gerald Coventry, the Coventry heir, Jean Muir,
in the costume of a rich, upper-class woman,
plays her part to perfection and the young
Coventry begins treating her as an equal. Jean
Muir reminds him:
Ah, you forget! This dress, the borrowed
splendor of these jewels ... all blind you
to reality. For a moment I cease to be a
servant, and for a moment you treat me as
an equal ((55).
Coventry treats Jean Muir as an equal because
of the dress and jewels. She becomes an apparent
member of the upper-class not because of some
God given gift of nobility, some special talent or
some law of nature, but because of a dress, some
jewels and her ability to act like a member of the
upper-class. Alcott says it is the ornaments of
wealth that grant certain people higher social
standing. Once wearing a certain dress and jewels,
a ‘‘divorced wife of a disreputable actor”
becomes a woman of high social standing. Alcott
points out the absurdity of social classes. Does
owning a nice wardrobe automatically make one
woman better than another? I think not and
neither did Louisa.May Alcott.
Hired as a gardener for the lyevlyn estate, Paul
also has the ability to make his employers see him
as an upper-class member in ‘‘The Mysterious
26

�Key**:
... the boy gave an air to whatever he wore
and looked like a gentlemen, even in his
livery. The dark blue coat with silver
buttons, his white-topped boots and bright
spurs, spotless gloves, and lightly drawn
belt were all in perfect order, all becoming,
and in his handsome, dark face caused
many a susceptible maid to blush and
simper as they passed him (172).
By dressing and acting the part, Paul convinces
others to believe that he is a member of the upperclass. Louisa May Alcott uses the story and Paul
to further point out the true differences between
the social classes.
In “Behind a Mask’’ and “The Mysterious
Key,’’ the leading characters are in poverty, they
work for upper-class land owners, they are able
to convince their employers that they are upperclass members by dressing and acting “upperclass.” In both stories, the wealthy, upper-class
families have become lazy, they think they are
better than those of the lower-class, and they are
conquered by the lower-class leading characters.
Louisa May Alcott has taken these two stories
and given us her ideas of the class differences:
it is absurd; it has caused the upper-class to think
they are better than the lower-class when wealth
is the real determining factor of the classes; and
the class differences (at least the attitudes of the
upper-class towards the lower-class) need to be
eliminated. This theme is applicable today, and
these stories should be included in the
anthologies of American literature.
The themes Louisa May Alcott presents (with
sometimes shocking force) are good reason for
her works to be included in the anthologies of
American literature. But what good would strong,
relevant themes be if the author was unable to
present those themes in convincing and readable
manner? The satisfactory presentation of themes
must be done artfully and convincingly; it must
be done with a unique style. I believe that Louisa
May Alcott’s works should be included in the
regular collections of American literature because

of her style in addition to her themes. Alcott uses
the essentials of style specifically to create her
characters. Her style of character development is
the fundamental tool Alcott uses to create her
tales.
The character of Jean Muir is the most
fascinating of all characters in this collection. The
development of the character is structured so that
the personality is built piece by piece to create
an enchanting woman with seemingly
supernatural powers over the male characters
(and this reader). Alcott’s first description of
Jean Muir sets the foundations of her character:
... the pale-faced girl in her plain black
dress, with no ornament but a little silver
cross at her throat. Small, thin and colorless
she was, with yellow hair, gray eyes, and
sharply cut, irregular, but very expressive
features. Poverty seemed to have set its
bond stamp on her, and life to have had for
her more frost than sunshine. But
something in the lines of the mouth
betrayed strength, and the clear, low voice
had a curious mixture of command and
entreaty in its varying tones. Not an
attractive woman, yet not an ordinary one;
and, as she sat there with delicate hands
lying in her lap, her head bent, and a bitter
look on her face, she was more interesting
than many a blithe and blooming girl (6).
Alcott’s style presents Jean Muir as a contrast
or contradiction within herself: she is thin and
colorless, but betrays strength; she is not
attractive, but not ordinary; she has a bitter
look, but is more interesting than a blithe
and blooming girl; her voice commands,
but yet pleads. Alcott pyramids these
contrasting/contradicting descriptions through
the story to create a character who is mysterious
and captivating. I admit a certain liking for Jean
Muir; Alcott has constructed the type of woman
I find attractive and seductive. It is easy to see
how the Coventry gentlemen fall for this woman,
and it is Alcott’s style in developing this charaaer
that makes her story work.

27

�Using organization to reveal the character a bit
at a time, with built in contradictions and
contrasts, Alcott drops a second description of
Jean Muir on the reader:
Still sitting on the floor she unbound and
removed the long abundant braids from her
head, wiped the pink from her face, took
out several pearly teeth, and slipping off her
dress appeared herself indeed, a haggard,
worn, and moody woman of thirty at least.
The metamorphosis was wonderful ...
(12).
Alcott has painted a mysterious, but attractive
picture of Jean Muir and then destroys it with
one stroke. Development of this type, with
contrasts and contradictions within Jean Muir,
gives the story its suspence and intrigue. It grabs
and forces the reader to read further, to discover
the real Jean Muir.
Jean Muir’s character is filled with contrasts
and contradictions, which Alcott purposely uses
as a style in completing her development. Not
only are the descriptions of Jean Muir
contradictions, but so are her actions. Jean Muir
lures the men of the Coventry household by doing
exactly what she should to attract a man: she
plays hard to get; she shows off in front of the
men when the chance arrives; she plays for the
two brothers’ interests while playing them against
each other. These actions are subtle, but it is
apparent to the reader what is going on. Then,
as she has done before, Alcott throws in a
contradiction:
... with the same indignant voice, the same
kindling eyes and glowing cheeks, {Jean
Muir) said rapidly, “I know I have no right
to speak in this way. I restrain myself as
long as I can, but when I can bear no more,
my true self breaks loose, and I defy
everything. I am tired of being a cold, calm
machine; it is impossible with an ardent
nature like mine, and I shall try no longer.
I cannot help it if people love me. 1 don’t
want their love. I only ask to be left in
peace, and why am I tormented so I cannot

see. I’ve neither beauty, money, nor rank,
yet every foolish boy mistakes my frank
interest for something warmer, and makes
me miserable. Think of me what you will,
but beware of me in time, for against my
will I may do you harm (45).
Jean Muir denies that she has been striving for
the attention of the Coventry men! This is a
contradiction in the actions of the character of
Jean Muir that Louisa May Alcott purposely
used in her style in creating the character of Jean
Muir. The reader must be attracted to this
woman, if for no other reason than to deduce her
motives. Jean Muir is captivating, to both the
Coventry men and the reader.
As part of the organization of the development
of the character, Alcott reveals parts of the whole
character a little at a time; but she hints at the
future course of character development as a
method of capturing the reader with the character
of Jean Muir. An example is the last line of the
previous quotation: “Think of me what you will,
but beware of me in time, for against my will I
may do you harm’’ (45). This is a statement of
things to come, and Alcott builds the suspense
with more revelations from Jean Muir:
I am a witch, and one day my disguise will
drop away and you will see me as I am, old,
ugly, bad and lost. Beware of me in time.
I’ve warned you. Now love me at your peril
(86).
In this quotation, Alcott reveals that there is
another side to Jean Muir; she is not as she
seems. The final development of the character
takes place in the final chapter: Jean Muir has
won her prize; her true self is revealed to the
remaining characters; and the loose ends fall into
place unifying the story.
I have selected the style of the development of
Jean Muir from “Behind a Mask’’ as only one
example of the unique style of Louisa May
Alcott. A complete discussion of her style could
consume many pages, but the important point
is that her style is unique and it contributes
to the qualities of her writing. Character

28

�development is the principal tool Alcott uses in
accomplishing the purpose of her stories. It is the
unique style of character development that
justifies my suggestion that Alcott’s work be
anthologized in American literature.
A survey of the anthologies of American
literature will in almost all instances include a
stock of regularly accepted works, regardless of
who edits a collection. This is not necessarily bad,
as some works deserve to be anthologized often
(if not always) because of their unique qualities.
Hawthorne’s The Scarlet Letter is an example that
is regularly anthologized, and it deserves to be.
The Scarlet Letter makes a statement on the
human condition, it makes an educated reader
ponder the story and it elevates the reader’s sense
of life and humanity. It is interpretive literature
at its best.
As a contrast, there is Louisa May Alcott’s
collection of stories from Behind a Mask. To
delve further into Alcott’s work, I ask, “does the
writing in Behind a Mask address the human
condition? Is this the central purpose of her
work?’’ I have attacked the first question in the
discussions of theme: yes, Louisa May Alcott’s
work in Behind a Mask does make a statement
on the human condition. As for the second
question, I don’t believe that Alcott’s primary
purpose is to make a statement on the human
condition. These four stories are escape literature,
written primarily to entertain. The statement of
the human condition is a by-product of her
writing. The stories are set in foreign lands,
although written by an American author; they are
(in essence) mysteries, or thrillers, with a sense
of the unknown, the mystic, the supernatural;
they deal with the wealthy, a fascinating topic for
the average, middle-class reader her stories were
probably targeted for. These stories do not require
the reader to ponder their message, they require
no in depth study to reveal their true nature. They
are good stories for cold winter nights by the fire,
for relaxation, for entertainment.
But does this mean that because these stories
are basically escape literature, written primarily

to entertain, they should be excluded from the
anthologies of American literature? Not
necessarily. Because Behind a Mask is escape
literature, it offers an interesting contrast to
Hawthorne’s novel, and it is for this reason of
contrast that Behind a Mask should be included
in the anthologies of American literature.
There are distinct Contrasts between Behind a
Mask and The Scarlet Letter. Hawthorne uses an
allegory in The Scarlet Letter. There is no allegory
in the stories of Behind a Mask. Hawthorne’s use
of symbolism is very apparent: birds, flowers, and
the scarlet letter itself are all symbols. There are
no symbols in Behind a Mask. Hester, in The
Scarlet Letter, is convicted and sentenced for a
“crime!* The reader questions if a real crime was
ever committed, or maybe a small indiscretion or
breach of morals. The outcome of her crime:
lifelong disgrace but the gift of a beautiful girl.
In “Behind a Mask,’’ Jean Muir commits no
“crime,” but stretches morals to the limit. The
outcome: financial reward, the attainment of a
name and title, the destruction of an entire
family. The contrasts are unlimited. Louisa May
Alcott’s work should be included in anthologies
with The Scarlet Letter as a contrast. (1 believe
this is particularly the case with the story
“Behind a Mask.”) Both works were written at
nearly the same time, they both present messages
and statements on the human condition. But they
contrast each other very well. These contrasts are
found not only in the devices (symbol, allegory,
characterization, plot) used in the works, but also
as a contrast between escape and interpretive
literature.
To summarize briefly, three main reasons exist
for including Louisa May Alcott’s Behind a Mask
in the anthologies of American literature. First,
Alcott’s themes are well stated and relevant today.
Second, Alcott’s style, especially her style of
character development, is unique. Third, the
stories of Behind a Mask are a marked contrast
to interpretive literature commonly anthologized.
Louisa May Alcott’s works should be
anthologized based on these three reasons.
29

�I don’t mean to suggest that Alcott’s
presentation of themes, her unique style and her
work’s contrast to others of the same period
make Behind a Mask a perfectly crafted piece of
literature. For a proper analysis, I must ask, “is
there anything wrong with the work?’’ I believe
there is. There are faults in the stories in Behind
a Mask, not faults in technique, or mechanics,
but faults related to the themes Alcott presents.
I find the outcomes of the stories personally
displeasing, vulgar and abrasive. I personally
don’t see the need for destruction and the desire
for revenge which is a minor recurring theme in
Alcott’s stories.
Jean Muir, a poor, lower-class woman, believes
she deserves equality with the upper-class,
dominant males. I agree. I don’t agree with her
tactics, the outcome she engineers, and her desire
for revenge. Does the fact that an inequality exists
give Jean Muir the right to deceive, the right to
set family members against each other, the right
to destroy an otherwise upstanding family? I
don’t believe so. The obstacles to equality were
enormous then, as they are today. Jean Muir had
an enormous task to achieve equality, but I
personally believe that a struggle can be fought
without using methods of deception and total
destruction. Use of these methods placed Jean
Muir on the level of her employers: wealthy
landowners, nobles and monarchs were specialists
at deception and destruction. Jean Muir’s battle
would be better fought in a different fashion.
Closely related to Jean Muir’s tactics are the
tactics used by Pauline in “Pauline’s Passion.’’
Her desire for total revenge blinds her to all else.
She marries and then uses her totally devoted
husband for the sole purpose of destroying her
former lover. The sad fact is that Manuel, her
husband, submits to Pauline’s evil uses:
Take all I have—fortune, name, my poor
self; use us as you will, we are proud and
happy to be spent for you! No service will
be too hard, no trial too long if in the end
you learn to love me with one tithe of the
affection I have made my life (115).

Pauline so wants revenge that she does not see
what she has. The total devotion Manuel has for
her is not seen, as Pauline is blinded by the desire
for revenge and destruction of her former lover.
She does not learn to love Manuel in the end, and
the chance for a lasting, meaningful relationship
is lost.
I find this desire for revenge, the pursuit of
destruction distasteful. 1 will admit that these
stories would lack nearly all their substance if
these themes were not present. This pursuit of
revenge and destruction makes the stories thrillers
and easy to sell. Perhaps if Alcott’s characters
had used methods not so forceful and abrasive,
a piece of interpretive literature would have been
the result; and the primary purpose of
entertainment would have been lost, as would
their marketability. I agree with the major themes
concerning the destruction of class and gender
differences. I don’t agree with the methods
Alcott’s characters use to accomplish their
victories.
The four stories in Behind a Mask are all
similar: they have foreign settings, three are set
in England, “Pauline’s Passion’’ is set in Cuba;
they have characters that are wealthy; and there
is some mystery involved or loose ends to be tied
up in the conclusion of the story. Are all four
stories of equal quality? No, they are not.
“Behind a Mask’’ is the strongest of the four.
Its central character is superbly developed as a
woman who demands attention, demands to be
loved and who turns out to be “a witch, ... old,
ugly, bad and lost*’ (86). The plot of “Behind
a Mask’’ is the most intriquing of the four with
pieces given a bit at a time to hold the suspense
and seize the reader. The outcome (although
disagreeable to me) is well constructed, with Jean
Muir engineering a coup d’etat ending in
destruction of the Coventry family. “Pauline’s
Passion’’ is the most abrasive of the stories. Its
theme centers on the revenge aspect, and I find
it displeasing. “The Mysterious Key’’ has no
major faults, but it lacks the development and
style of “Behind a Mask.’’ “The Abbot’s Ghost’’
30

�is simply a love story, dressed up as a mystery
surrounding the wrongfully granted inheritance
and Maurice TYeherne’s handicap. There are no
major faults with this story either, but again it
lacks the style and essential character
development found in “Behind a Mask” As an
editor of an anthology of American literature, I
would include “Behind a Mask” over the
remaining three stories. The story is well written
and deserves to be anthologized.
Reaching a decision on whether these works
should be anthologized or not was not an easy
task. At times I thought they should and at times
1 thought they should not. During my
examination and analysis, I would examine the
themes and their presentation and conclude that
the stories should be anthologized. But then I
would study the results of the struggles presented
in the themes and I would find the minor themes
of destruction and revenge. With a sour taste, I
would reject the stories and conclude that they
should not be included in standard collections.
I would re-read “Behind a Mask” and become

secretly infatuated with Jean Muir (for all her
faults), wishing she were not a fictitious character
in a one hundred year old story. Through the
unique method of development of Muir’s
character, 1 would conclude that the work should
be anthologized. But the ultimate deciding factor
came out in the contrasts between Alcott’s
collection and the standard anthologized works,
especially The Scarlet Letter. If for no other
reason. Behind a Mask should be read as a
contrast to The Scarlet Letter. So I conclude that,
given the weaknesses already discussed, the well
developed themes, unique style of character
creation and contrasts to other works of the same
period are the main reasons for my suggestion
that Alcott’s work be anthologized. Through all
my mind-changing one thing remained: these
stories are very entertaining, without sacrificing
the message. The works of Louisa May Alcott,
specifically the short novel “Behind a Mask,”
should be included in the regular anthologies of
American literature.

Works Cited
Alcott, Louisa May. Behind a Mask: The Unknown Thrillers of Louisa May Alcott. Madeleine Stern, Ed. New York: William
Morrow and Co., 1975.

31

�Problems Affecting
the Homeless
By Daniel Meyers
Course: Government in the United States
Instructor: David Cherry
The assignment was an optional extra-credit term paper of six to eight pages, properly cited. (This paper
first appeared as a guest editorial in the Casper Star-fVibune March 23, 1988.)

In 1937 President Franklin D. Roosevelt staled,
“I see one third of the nation ill housed, ill clad,
ill nourished” (la). To combat the problem
Roosevelt instituted the social programs of social
insurance, public assistance, and public health
and welfare services (lb). Although it helped
some, many were left poor. In 1980 President
Reagan called for drastic cuts in social welfare
programs (Ic). There are some programs for the
homeless but they are miniscule compared to the
need. Housing seems to be a key issue. The
problem is nationwide, affecting even out of the
way states like Wyoming. Congress is pressuring

the President in his last years of office. A change
seems to be in the air. The question is will
homelessness be construed as a state or federal
issue. Two or three thousand homeless in
Wyoming would like to know (7&amp;8). The verdict
is still out and will be indefinitely if some have
their way. The pertinent question is whether or
not to aid the homeless. We may see policies
similar to that of the Elizabethan Poor Law take
effect if the country remains wedded to protestant
work ethic standards.
On January 6, 1988, President Reagan signed
his first major housing bill. The bill would end

32

�temporary suspension of FHA mortgage
programs beneficial to young families. The bill
also helps the poor to attain rentals with
government vouchers. These rentals are to be
supplied by the private market (2). Although
most homeless can not afford a mortgage, the
rentals are sorely needed.
In the past eight years no major housing bills
have been passed but some housing assistance has
come through via porkbarrel amendments to the
immigration and seat belt laws (3). The issue of
homelessness is between housing and
employment. Robert Hayes of the New York
based coalition for the homeless states, “the three
word solution is: Housing, Housing, Housing”
(4). The Opponent of this issue is James Starks
of the Dallas Life Foundation. He would fit in
tightly with the Reagan Administration and
states, “What’s needed are jobsand training” (4).
February 4th, 1970, mayor Richard Daly of
Chicago gave several reasons for a deteriorating
housing market: increasing interest rates, higher
construction costs, scarcity of materials, and the
propensity of contractors to build homes in the
more affluent suburbs than in the city (5). The
situation has deteriorated further in the ’80s. The
number of assisted rental units has gone down
from 220,500 in 1981 to fewer than 98,000 in 1987
(6). There seems to be little change from debates
and bandaid politics.
Progress has been made recently due to a
weakening in the Reagan administration. Senator
Al Gore of Tennesse, candidate for the presidency
of the United States, has supported this
legislation. H.R. 5140 with a $4-billion budget
made possible new law which requires the
Secretaries of Health and Human Services and
Agriculture to develop a single application for
S.S.I. and foodstamps (6). These services are to
be made available to mental health and penal
institutions to insure the individuals will not be
put on the streets without regular support (6). I
feel this is a major step in thwarting homelessness
and reinstitutionalization. I was released from the
Wyoming State Hospital in 1976 with no home

to go to, a month’s supply of medicine for a
chronic illness, $25, and a bus ticket to Casper.
1 was one of a few that survived this process, so
I have been told. 1 do not know anyone else who
did. 1 can appreciate this portion of the bill more
than most (10). Other progressive measures
include the right of homeless to pay homeless
shelters and soup kitchens with their food stamps.
The Emergency Food and Shelter Act was funded
with $70 million. Though in 1982 these were the
only monies allocated for the homeless (6).
Is homelessness a state or federal
responsibility? Are cities responsible for their
own? Governor Mike Sullivan of the State of
Wyoming recently confronted by the plight of the
homeless states, “we’ll attempt to do what we
can” (7). In the same article some Wyoming
social workers doubt the existence of a homeless
problem in Wyoming (7). Wyoming has done
little for the homeless center in Jackson. The
center in Jackson requires that a person have at
least a minimum wage job to stay there (8). James
Starks of the Dallas Life Foundation would
support programs such as this. Some federal
funds are received by Soul’s Anchor. Wyoming
is a cold and unpopulated place and if the
homeless are gathering here, they are gathering
in multitudes in the larger cities of the country.
With the little financial aid mentioned in this
report, there is no way to alter the effects of
homelessness (9). The outcome could be
widespread disease and violence or possibly a
massive die-off of the homeless.
The protestant work ethic basically slates you
get what you earn (Id). Work and you will be
rewarded justly. If this is true, why does the
unemployed homeless oilfield hand not have
enough to eat. This is a scenario fitting for
Wyoming. He created wealth for his state and in
return the state has no plan to help him in his
time of need. How many legislators own oil stock
which benefited from this man’s labor. 1 would
like to know.
The Reagan administration and many others
imply “get a job and you’ll have a home.” Sharon

33

�Shore, Director of the Casper Housing Authority,
does not agree (3). Problems such as low wages,
sub-standard housing, and poor economic
conditions dispell the protestant work ethic
myths. The two thousand to three thousand
homeless people in Wyoming are also apt to
disagree (7&amp;8). However, there are some
Wyoming social workers who feel the problem is
not all that serious. It took only one unfortunate
man to draw the good Samaritan’s attention. Two
to three thousand homeless should draw the
attention of Wyoming social workers. This causes
me to question if these people know what field
they are in. President Reagan has gotten away
with it for eight years so why can’t they? We have
a state in which our leaders are preparing to look
the other way. I feel Wyoming will support in the
future federal assistance to the homeless. It will
create a bureaucracy to deal with the problem.
The bureaucracy will be in doubt of whether or
not there is a problem but will accept federal
money anyway.
In the last quarter of the twentieth century we
need to do better than the Elizabethan Poor Law
of 1601 where institutionalization began only
because people were begging, not because they
were poor, ill or homeless (Id). The Elizabethan

Poor Law was instituted not because homeless
persons were poor or ill but because they began
to beg. This was outrageous to the upper classes.
Aid was given to stop the begging. Is this the next
phase of the homeless for America?
1 feel the Reagan administration has failed in
handling such social issues as the homeless. The
Wyoming state government is unsure about
homelessness. The little aid given here and there
is a bandaid approach to a bleeding jugular.
Some wish to help with jobs, but where are they?
Some want to use welfare but no one wants to
pay for it. The Reagan administration turned its
back on the homeless. The homeless situation is
being debated with no clear cut answers. As long
as this debate continues there will be little aid for
the homeless. The debate has been going on since
the 1930s when Franklin D. Roosevelt was
President. Sixty years have passed and there is still
no solution, only a brief respite during the
Johnson Administration (the Great Society, in the
’60s) (lb). It makes one question the effectiveness
of the American political system. In 15 years
there will be an estimated 19 million homeless in
America (9). The problem is bad and becoming
worse. Action is needed now!

Works Cited
la. Zastrow, Charles. Social Welfare Inslilulions, Third edition (1986): pp.84.

lb. Zastrow, Charles. Social Welfare Institutions, Third edition (1986): pp. 21-23.
lc. Zastrow, Charles. Social Welfare Institutions, Third edition (1986): pp. 24.

ld. Zastrow, Charles. Social Welfare Institutions. Third edition (1986): pp. 17-19.
2.

Casper Star Tribune, “Reagan signs his first big housing bill” (Feb. 6, 1988): pp. B5.

3.

Shore, Sharon; Director Casper Housing Authority, Interview, Feb (Feb. 17, 1988).

4.

U. S. News and World Report (Feb. 9, 1987). pp. 10.

5.

Daly, Richard J. “Urban Housing Needs” The Annals of America Vol. 19. pp. 104-109.

6.

Leland, Mickey. “Toward a national policy to end homelessness” America (Jan. 31, 1987). pp. 69-71.

7.

Farris, Scott. Casper Star Tribune “Homeless problem even in small Wyo towns” (Jan. 3, 1988).

8.

Reverend Meff, Director The Central Wya Rescue Mission, (Soul’s Anchor), Lecture, SWCK 378, (Feb. 12, 1988).

9.

NBC News documentry, “Home Sweet Home” (Jan. 15, 1988).

10.

Meyers, Daniel. “Homeless person (1976).”

34

�Know Thyself
By Cherie Kloefkorn
Course: inlroduclion to Philosophy
Instructor: Dr. Robert Carlson
The student was to choose a topic related to the semester’s readings, formulate a question about the
topic, and attempt to answer the question. The essay was not to be a research paper; rather the student
was to think about the topic in relation to the works read, and use the works to help formulate an answer
by citing them.

examination as to what is his human use, and in
this way come to know his own powers?’’ To
“know thyself’’ means the education of the soul
about itself and its relationship with the world
it inhabits. Man is the only living creature with
a spiritual soul. His choices for survival and good
living are not innate qualities as are the instincts
in other animals. Man’s soul provides him with
cognizances and volution. Because man is a
reasoning being, he must understand himself, the
essence of his soul, if he hopes to fulfill his
essential being. Allan Bloom writes, “ ...
education is the taming or domestication of the
soul’s raw passions—not suppressing or excising
them which would deprive the soul of its

Man’s existence is a journey through life’s
classroom. The assignment each one of us has
is to come to understand our own vital force.
How can I possibly understand who I am?
Socrates directed me to Delphi for the key. It was
incredibly simple, “Know Thyself.’’
What does this inscription signify? Socrates
would ask, “Do you think a man knows himself
who knows only his name? Or is the case like that
of the men who buy horses, who do not think
that they know the horse they want until they
have examined whether it is tame or wild, strong
or weak, swift or slow, and how it is in all the
other respects which make a horse useful or
useless? Does not a man make this kind of
35

�■«

energy—but forming and informing them as art.
The goal of harmonizing the enthusiastic part of
the soul with what develops later, the rational
part, is perhaps impossible to attain. But without
it man can never be whole.” Man must seek this
wholeness if he is ever to realize this potential.
In his existence he has the possibility for
greatness.
In what way can one come to know himself?
Philosophy is the key to unlock the door of selfawareness. One must study the truths and
principles of being; in other words, one must
become a philosopher. Socrates advises, ‘‘Every
seeker after wisdom knows that up to the time
when philosophy takes over, his soul is a helpless
prisoner, chained hand and foot in the body,
compelled to view reality not directly but only
through its prison bars, and wallowing in utter
ignorance.”
Man must be conscious of his life-long
education. It is the basis of self-discovery. Some
of this education is formal within the framework
of our educational institutions. Certainly this
aspect of learning is very important. It should
be the foundation for logical thinking that the
person will continue to use when he wrestles with
issues and questions the rest of his life. William
Bennett challenges students, ‘‘They should
discover the works that tell us how men and
women of our own and other civilizations have
grappled with life’s relentless questions ....”
This learning process must continue after formal
education. Each person must come to know how
he feels about goodness, wisdom, and justice as
well as many other philosophical problems.
William Bennett tells us to ‘‘ ... animate a
conscious examination of life’s enduring
questions.” The banker, the lawyer, the housewife,
and nurse all need to philosophize, to come to
know themselves and how they should live their
lives. Socrates explains in the Phaedo, ‘‘ ... it
is wisdom that makes possible courage and self­
control and integrity, or in a word, true goodness
....” Regardless of what trade or profession one
endeavors in, one must seek to know the answers

to life’s important questions in order to have the
ability to make judgements and decisions.
Socrates counsels, ‘‘Is it not clear that through
self-knowledge men experience most goods, and
that they experience most evils because of self­
deception? For men who know themselves know
what they need, and they recognize what they can
and cannot do.”
Most people spend very little time in self­
reflection as was the case with Euthedemus when
he said, ‘‘I was certain that I knew this, for I
would hardly know anything else if 1 did not
know myself.” Socrates showed him he really did
not know himself just as Solzhenitsyn reproves
us today. He says, ‘‘Many of you have already
found out and others will find out in the course
of their lives that truth eludes us if we do not
concentrate with total attention on its pursuit.”
The great minds of yesterday and today have the
same message. Few seem to hear.
Most people (Jo not take the time to find these
doorways to enlightenment. They bump into
walls without any principles or convictions to
guide them. Perhaps the less they think about
these things the easier it is to deceive themselves.
Often it is not a lack of knowledge such as was
the case with Euthedemus and Meno, but a
deliberate avoidance as was the case with
Callicles. I’m sure many people today would
agree with Callicle’s interpretation of philosophy.
‘‘For philosophy, you know, Socrates, is a pretty
thing if you engage in it moderately in your
youth, but if you continue in it longer than you
should, it is the ruin of any man.” People today
are too busy or cannot be bothered with
philosophical issues. They are engaged in the
pursuit of human pleasures, the quest for fame,
fortune, and power. Will Herberg states that,
‘‘With these convictions so rapidly losing their
appeal to the modem mind, nothing has been left
but the indulgence of pleasure, the anarchy of
power and the chaos of ‘self-created values.’ The
moral crisis of our time is at bottom a
metaphysical and religious crisis.” He continues,
”Without grounding his being in something
36

�beyond, man cannot preserve his humanness.”
And so man cannot hope to survive, let alone
“live well,” unless he becomes a philosopher. He
must learn what his basic spiritual needs are if
he is to fulfill his potentiality. Solzhenitsyn warns
us, ‘‘Even if we are spared destruction of war,
our lives will have to change if we want to save
life from self-destruction. We cannot avoid
revisiting the fundamental definitions of human
life and human society?’
One’s assignment in life is to ‘‘know thyself.”

The quality of our lives will be reflected in the
degree of earnest intention we give to this quest.
Socrates asks each person,
. to make your
first and chief concern not for your bodies nor
for your possessions, but for the highest welfare
of your souls ...And Diotima tells us in the
Symposium that man,
. will find in such
contemplation the seed of the most fruitful
discourse and the loftiest thought, and reap a
golden harvest of philosophy, ....” This truly
is the key to self-knowledge.

37

�Spring 1989

�</text>
                  </elementText>
                </elementTextContainer>
              </element>
            </elementContainer>
          </elementSet>
        </elementSetContainer>
      </file>
    </fileContainer>
    <collection collectionId="212">
      <elementSetContainer>
        <elementSet elementSetId="1">
          <name>Dublin Core</name>
          <description>The Dublin Core metadata element set is common to all Omeka records, including items, files, and collections. For more information see, http://dublincore.org/documents/dces/.</description>
          <elementContainer>
            <element elementId="50">
              <name>Title</name>
              <description>A name given to the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85473">
                  <text>Casper College Challenge </text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="47">
              <name>Rights</name>
              <description>Information about rights held in and over the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85474">
                  <text>&lt;a href="http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/"&gt;http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/&lt;/a&gt;</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="41">
              <name>Description</name>
              <description>An account of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85475">
                  <text>This digital collection contains issues of Challenge, a publication of Casper College student writing from across the curriculum but outside of writing-specific courses. Issues of the publication date from 1987 to 1991 and 1993 to 1996.</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="51">
              <name>Type</name>
              <description>The nature or genre of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85476">
                  <text>Text</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="39">
              <name>Creator</name>
              <description>An entity primarily responsible for making the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85477">
                  <text>Casper College</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="44">
              <name>Language</name>
              <description>A language of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85478">
                  <text>ENG</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="43">
              <name>Identifier</name>
              <description>An unambiguous reference to the resource within a given context</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85479">
                  <text>CCA 04.ii.1996.01_Challenge</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="42">
              <name>Format</name>
              <description>The file format, physical medium, or dimensions of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85480">
                  <text>PDF</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
          </elementContainer>
        </elementSet>
      </elementSetContainer>
    </collection>
    <itemType itemTypeId="1">
      <name>Text</name>
      <description>A resource consisting primarily of words for reading. Examples include books, letters, dissertations, poems, newspapers, articles, archives of mailing lists. Note that facsimiles or images of texts are still of the genre Text.</description>
      <elementContainer>
        <element elementId="7">
          <name>Original Format</name>
          <description>The type of object, such as painting, sculpture, paper, photo, and additional data</description>
          <elementTextContainer>
            <elementText elementTextId="85516">
              <text>Print publication</text>
            </elementText>
          </elementTextContainer>
        </element>
      </elementContainer>
    </itemType>
    <elementSetContainer>
      <elementSet elementSetId="1">
        <name>Dublin Core</name>
        <description>The Dublin Core metadata element set is common to all Omeka records, including items, files, and collections. For more information see, http://dublincore.org/documents/dces/.</description>
        <elementContainer>
          <element elementId="50">
            <name>Title</name>
            <description>A name given to the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85506">
                <text>1989 Challenge</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="47">
            <name>Rights</name>
            <description>Information about rights held in and over the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85507">
                <text>&lt;a href="http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/"&gt;http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/&lt;/a&gt;</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="56">
            <name>Date Created</name>
            <description>Date of creation of the resource.</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85508">
                <text>1989</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="41">
            <name>Description</name>
            <description>An account of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85509">
                <text>1989 issue of Challenge, a publication of Casper College student writing from across the curriculum but outside of writing-specific courses.</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="51">
            <name>Type</name>
            <description>The nature or genre of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85510">
                <text>Text</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="39">
            <name>Creator</name>
            <description>An entity primarily responsible for making the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85511">
                <text>Casper College</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="44">
            <name>Language</name>
            <description>A language of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85512">
                <text>ENG</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="70">
            <name>Is Part Of</name>
            <description>A related resource in which the described resource is physically or logically included.</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85513">
                <text>Casper College Challenge, CCA 04.ii.1996.01 WyCaC US. Casper College Archives and Special Collections.</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="43">
            <name>Identifier</name>
            <description>An unambiguous reference to the resource within a given context</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85514">
                <text>CCA 04.ii.1996.01_Challenge_1989</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="42">
            <name>Format</name>
            <description>The file format, physical medium, or dimensions of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85515">
                <text>PDF</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
        </elementContainer>
      </elementSet>
    </elementSetContainer>
  </item>
  <item itemId="8008" public="1" featured="0">
    <fileContainer>
      <file fileId="8359">
        <src>https://caspercollege.cvlcollections.org/files/original/f0c3d0a29ab24863318e275d8c8ca99d.pdf</src>
        <authentication>44dcf3d035b2844d0e67283848b12e3b</authentication>
        <elementSetContainer>
          <elementSet elementSetId="4">
            <name>PDF Text</name>
            <description/>
            <elementContainer>
              <element elementId="92">
                <name>Text</name>
                <description/>
                <elementTextContainer>
                  <elementText elementTextId="85493">
                    <text>CASPER

xcmg cWIbe
WYOMING

CHkLUNEE

�CHALLENGE—In every academic discipline,
to study, to think, to express clearly one’s knowledge and
understanding in suitable written forms.

�Challenge
Ill
Published at Casper Community College
Casper, Wyoming 82601
February, 1988
Copyright by Casper Community College

MRfi

�Challenge: 1988
Table of Contents
Sung Dynasty: T&gt;’u Chou, Sgraffito and Me
Reviews

Rebecca Claar............................... 5

Debbie English...............................................................................................8

The Challenge of the Future

Paul Schukman................................................................. 13

Sarah Grimke’s Letters
Lab Report

Christine K. Forkner............................................... 10

Timothy E. Gardner............................................................................. 17

Cindy Norman...................................................................22

Sales Promotion Plan

Las Marismas de Espalla
We Are All Genuises

Kerri Smith...................................................................26

Crystal Havely ............. ......................................... 28

Computer Generated Bode Diagrams

Children and Tfelevision

Chris Stein......................... 32

Elizabeth A. Gardner..................................................... 37

Children’s Books Relating to the Vietnam War
Reincarnation Through Motivation

Cathy Heaton Sondelski ... .40

Janet L. DeVries........................................... 42

Determination of Charge to Mass Ratio for an Electron

Cover design executed by Eric Valdez
Diagrams executed by Gregg Scott

Doug Leonard
Bill Weber.............. 47

�Introduction
Casper College is pleased to present the second issue of Challenge, a magazine to
honor excellence. As a display medium for academic endeavor. Challenge solicits
superior examples of student writing from all college disciplines; our purpose is to
illustrate both the breadth and depth of course work on our campus. Instructors have
selected representative writing from their courses, and, though we do not include pieces
from writing classes, we encourage all forms: exams, reports, essays, term papers.
This issue represents work submitted in response to the call for papers for two
semesters, spring 1987 and fall 1987.

Arlene Larson, editor
Casper College
Casper, Wyoming
Spring, 1988

�Sung Dynasty:
Tz’u Chou, Sgraffito and Me
By Rebecca Claar
Course: Ceramics I
Instructor: Lynn Munns
Students wrote a course paper on some aspect of pottery making.

second look. I copied both and filed the copies
in my notebook, ready for class.
Monday came. I showed the “homework” to
Mr. Munns and told him I hadn’t decided which
to make. His response, “Make them both!”
(Later, when discussing this with a former
ceramics student, I was told, “A typical Munns
response!”)
My decision having been made, I began to
scale-up the dimensions of the pictures to
facilitate duplicating the forms of the original
pots. Neither picture was accompanied by size
information, so I tried to envision how large 1

He said, “Find a picture of a sgraffito pot that
really excites you and bring a copy of the picture
to class next Monday.” The “he” being my
ceramics instructor, Mr. Munns, and the situation
being an assignment to duplicate a sgraffito
pot—my introduction to the sgraffito technique
and the Sung Dynasty’s significance in the
history of ceramics.
Relying on the index of each book to direct me
to sgraffito pots, I quickly scanned many books
with few finds. I finally found two Chinese, Sung
Dynasty, Tz’u Chou Ware pots which didn’t
necessarily excite me, but they did command a
5

�metalwork.
The form of “the sexy one” could have been
of T’ang influence since the foot and the neck
are so contrasting to the size and shape of the
body. My second pot is very typical pure T’zu
Chou ware with its simple flowing form very
similar to the Gallipot Vase, an example in a
collection in Tokyo.
In contrast to my pots, the original pots were
wheel-thrown, a very brief process compared to
coiling, but one which required and still requires
much control and skill. (At this time, 1 am
struggling with the goal of throwing a 3 "d x 7 Ti
cylinder!) Many of the Tz’u Chou pots were quite
large, approximately 16", and are documentation
of the Tz’u Chou “virtuosity in wheel technique,”
according to Rhodes. The clay was usually gray
or buff in color and the slip (engobe) while or
light colored. The glazes used were transparent.
Again unlike my pots, a piece of Tz’u Chou
ware was the result of an organized production
system, not of an individual. One person, usually
an apprentice, would prepare the clay, another the
glazes, another would throw the pot, still another
would do the decorative work and, very likely,
the firing was done in a communal kiln where
thousands of pieces could be fired at once My
glaze and clays have been prepared for me and
someone else will be supervising the firing, but
I have formed the pots, dressed them and will be
decorating them.
Few pieces of Ti’u Chou ware are marked and
those which are, are signed as work of a family:
“made by the Chang family,” “made by the Ho
family.” (You can be sure that when my pots are
completed, anyone who looks at the bottom of
one will know when, by whom and that it is a
replica of a Sung Dynasty Tz’u Chou pot!)
As 1 have already mentioned, Tz’u Chou ware
was the everyday ware of the Sung Dynasty,
having its beginning in the early part of the
Northern Sung Dynasty. Its name is synonomous
with that of the area in North China where it was
first produced, Tk’u Chou.
Being primarily the common peoples’ ware

would like the finished pieces to be. 1 decided to
make one 20" high and the other one, 16" high.
Since we were handforming and had not
started wheel-throwing, my projects were to be
coil pots—my first experience with coiling being
when I began the larger, “more shapely,” of the
two pots. As this pot developed, I began to refer
to it as ‘‘the sexy one.” And, as both pots grew,
so grew my excitement with the transformation
from a lump of clay to something with shape—a
product of my hands, a part of me!
At every stage, I have met with both excitement
and frustration; repeatedly I found that the
diameter was greater than planned, and trimming
the neck proved to be a challenge. After clearing
the hurdles, I have to concede that both pots are
going to be ‘‘beuuutifulU”! At this stage I am
eager to tackle the sgraffito technique.
As my association with both pots has become
more than a duplication process, 1 have wondered
many things about the original pots: simply how,
why, when and where they were made. And, since
1 am currently studying ancient art history and
have become aware that much of the ancient art
was not intended primarily as decoration, I am
wondering the possible symbolism of the
ornamentation used on the pots which I am
replicating.
So, again to the library, and another search,
this time for answers to my questions about the
making of sgraffito wares: how, why, when, where
and with what deeper meaning.
First, I found that sgraffito, also spelled
sgraffiota by one source, is defined as a
decorating technique in which an exterior coating
of slip applied to a raw clay pot is subsequently
scratched through, revealing the color of the clay
or body beneath.
This technique was “new” in the early part of
the Northern Sung era, and was employed on a
large portion of the Tk’u Chou wares, usually in
floral and leaf designs (symbolic of great virility
and dignity), but also with Chinese sayings. The
early sgraffito wares displayed T’ang influence,
in form and in design suggestive of incised
6

�that it was, T^’u Chou ware did not enjoy the
benefits of imperial patronage, which was
extended to the other ceramics and to art in
general. However, there is a Sung Dynasty Tk’u
Chou vase in the Cleveland Museum of Art
which today is regarded “as one of the two or
three greatest Tz’u Chou vases in the world,”
according to Lee. This vase is decorated by a
combination of incising and inlay, displaying a
definite influence of Chinese metalwork.
The T^’u Chou ware was basically slip
decorated stoneware, simple in form, earthy and
monochromatic colors, until the later period of
Sung Ik’u Chou tradition, when colored enamels
began to be used. The pieces with sgraffito
decoration had a sculptural appearance, those
with inlay were suggestive of incised metal work,
and the ones with painted slip displayed the
freedom of the use of the brush, suggesting swift
yet controlled flowing strokes.
The Sung Dynasty (960-1223 A.D.) was,
according to Rhodes, “a time of mellow
fulfillment in Chinese art ... the artists of this
time brought to perfection many of the qualities
in the art of the previous eras.” Emperors built
pottery factories and encouraged new designs and

glazes. They also used large quantities of wares,
and these types became very popular. It’s ironic
that one of the “unpopular” wares according to
imperial standards, Ik’u Chou ware, has had
more influence on contemporary American and
English studio pottery than any other. The Sung
Dynasty is no more, but Tz’u Chou, eight
centuries later is one of the few places which has
continuously produced pottery in China.
So, the pots which 1 have studied and am now
duplicating were made 800 to KXX) years ago, in
Tk’u Chou, Northern China, by very skillful
artists and craftsmen, organized in an assembly
line system, where no one person produced a
complete piece of pottery. These pieces were
decorated with the sgraffito technique,
originating during the Sung Dynasty (a high
point era in the history of ceramics) and show
definite influence of the metalwork being done
at the time. Both pots were functional and
beautiful as well as symbolic of virility and
dignity.
And both pots (and Mr. Munns) are
responsible for my interesting encounter with the
Sung Dynasty and Tk’u Chou ware.

Works Cited
Casson, Michael. The Cn^fl of the Potter. 1st U.S. Edition. Woodbury, New York: Barron’s Educational Series, Inc, 1979.

Fitzgerald, Charles Patrick. The Horizon History of China. New York: American Heritage Publishing Company, c 1969.
Gardner, Louise Art Through the Ages. Sth Edition. Orlando, Florida: Harcourt Brace Jovanovich, Inc., 1986.
Lee, Sherman E. A History of Far Eastern Art. New York, Harry N. Abrams, Inc

Rhodes, Daniel. Stoneware &amp; Pottery. 1st Edition. Radnor, Pennsylvania: Chilton Book Company, 1974.

7

�Reviews
By Debbie English
Course: Theory of Arithmetic I
Instructor: Mickie Ahlquist
The students were to review two magazine articles per month, one from The Arithmetic Teacher and
one from The Mathematics Teacher.

8

�“What Lies behind Measurement,” Harrison,
William R. Arithmetic Teacher, Mar, 1987:19-21.

“Guessing Geometric Shapes,” Bledsoe, Gloria
J. Mathematics Teacher, Mar, 1987:178-180.

This article states that students have a
superficial understanding of measurement
because the schools do not teach the basic
measurement concepts.
The author discussed how to approach this
subject for conceptual understanding. To teach
this unit it is first important to discuss just what
measurement is and to delve into the history of
how things were measured by using body parts
as the unit of measure. The author then had the
children use their feet to measure things. This led
to a discussion on how set standards are
important to help everyone understand the unit
of measure. The class made a ruler and marked
it into units. The end point was not made zero;
instead it was started with various other numbers.
The children then measured the length of objects.
They measured them from the left and also the
right end of the ruler.
When I started reading this article I thought,
“No problem. Everybody knows how to measure
the length of things,” but as I read the article 1
agreed with the author that it is much more than
laying something on a ruler and reading the
number. I plan to try this out with my children.

This article discussed a game that involves
guessing geometric shapes. This activity could be
a very helpful review activity for a secondary
mathematics course in which the geometric
shapes were studied.
The game itself used a bingo-like card with
twenty-eight geometric shapes drawn on it and
identified. Each student is given a card with a
shape on it. The game is played in groups of two
or three students. The students ask questions that
can be answered by a yes or no. Using the answer,
the drawings that were eliminated are covered by
markers. The questions are asked about the
properties of the shape. The game length is
determined by the quality of the questions. The
questioning takes place in turn until all but one
figure is covered. Then the direct question can
be asked about what the figure is.
This game looked quite interesting; what
caught my eye was the example of the card with
all the geometric shapes on it with their names.
1 hardly know any of them. I thought this game
could be modified or even made into any number
of completely different games.

9

�The Challenge of the Future
By Christine K, Forkner
Course: Introduction to Philosophy
Instructor: Dr. Robert K. Carlson
Choose a topic related to the readings this semester and formulate a question about your topic that you
will attempt to answer in your essay. E&gt;o not write a research paper; instead use the works you have read
to help you formulate the answer.

even the religious organizations. Clearly, this
moral decadence must be addressed and
corrected if civilization is to survive. This will
require drastic changes in our educational system,
our family structure, our social outlook, our view
of technology, and certainly our basic spiritual
values.
Have we truly reached the point of total and
inescapable moral exhaustion? Will Herberg
states that “the moral crisis of our time cannot
be identified merely with the widespread
violation of accepted moral standards’’ This
alone does not constitute spiritual exhaustion.
Norms have always been violated and moral
standards have evolved and changed. True

During the past decade, a great controversy has
arisen over the state of the American educational
system. When one in five American students is
graduating functionally illiterate, Americans
should be extremely concerned. Even worse are
the statistics describing drug use, violence and the
complete lack of moral standards among the
youth. The United States is not alone. These
problems exist in almost every industrialized
nation. This lends credence to Alexander
Solzhenitsyn’s claim that the West has reached
the point of spiritual exhaustion. Unfortunately,
this exhaustion is not confined to the educational
system. It affects every aspect of our lives: the
media, the government, the judicial system, and
10

�spiritual exhaustion is not a violation of accepted
norms or a testing of moral standards but a
complete lack of standards and spiritual values.
It is characterized by hedonistic ideas,
materialistic values, irresponsibility so often
demonstrated by our chosen leaders and the
media and worst of all, acceptance of these ideas
and attributes by the masses.
In today’s society, citizens have ben granted the
material wealth necessary to pursue a new form
of happiness. The “Protestant Ethic’’ has been
abandoned to be replaced by a “self-indulgent
quest for fun.’’ How often do we hear the rallying
cry, “if it feels good, do it?’’ This phrase says
much about our life-style and points the way for
our pursuit of material wealth and physical
pleasure. The obsession of having a “good time’’
has permeated the minds of men, leaving little
room for spiritual or intellectual pursuits. The
value of knowledge is now defined solely in
monetary terms. Colleges and universities are
filled with those whose sole purpose is learning
enough to obtain a lucrative career. Under these
conditions, morality loses all importance.
Cheating becomes a way to get ahead and
violence becomes a viable alternative. These
circumstances explain the lack of civil courage
displayed by both the political leaders and the
general populace. When ideas have no intrinsic
value and moral values cease to be relevant, few
are willing to risk anything to defend them.
Clearly, unless this situation is remedied, the
current moral abyss will continue to grow.
Following World War II, Western nations
became obsessed with the concept of individual
freedom and civil rights. Unfortunately, as
Alexander Solzhenitsyn states, “the defense of
individual rights has reached such extremes as to
make society as a whole defenseless against
certain individuals!’ Society has become a victim
of moral decadence. The result has been “the
misuse of liberty for moral violence against
young people,’’ pornography, and drug use.
Criminals are often protected by our legal system
at the expense of the victims. Under these

conditions, true justice and temperance, as
defined by Socrates, cease to exist. There is a
direct correlation between the current crisis and
a theory advanced by Pratagoras in Ancient
Greece. Both fail to recognize the faults inherent
in mankind. Protagoras’ doctrine is known as
Anthropocentricity. It is defined by Solzhenitsyn
as “the proclaimed and enforced autonomy of
man from any higher force above him.’’
The ancient philosophers, notably Socrates,
Aristotle and Plato, easily recognized the inherent
dangers of this doctrine and used their influence
to assure its obscurity. During the Renaissance,
however, it became the basis of both
governmental and social policy. The concept of
absolute morality became a recessive belief
dominated by moral relativism. Absolute truth
and justice were abandoned, and materialism
became the prevailing philosophy. Clearly,
Anthropocentricity is the major cause of our
spiritual decline. Both our materialistic ideals and
our abuse of individual liberty are a direct result
of its popularity. For, as Alexander Solzhenitsyn
explained, “this new way of thinking, which had
imposed on us its guidance, did not see any
higher task than the attainment of happiness on
Earth. It based modern Western civilization on
the dangerous trend to worship men and his
material needs.’’ Human beings ignore their
spiritual needs. Situationalism becomes the
philosophy of the day. Everything can become
acceptable if the circumstances can explain it; any
action can be rationalized or moralized. Under
this theory even the grossest abomination can
become morally acceptable. This theory is both
destructive and invalid.
Will Herberg noted that, “if relativism began
the process, it was the triumph of technology that
carried it to a disastrous conclusion.’’ Our limited
control over nature has given us a sense of power
we have never before known, a sense of control
over our destiny. The knowledge of truth is no
longer an important goal in the West. The new
goal is the acquisition of pure power. This has
led to the creation of weapons with the
11

�our young, and doing it by example. Certainly
this can be done to some degree by exposing them
to the great literary and philosophical classics,
but we must also provide acceptable standards
and limits for their actions and establish an
emphasis on academic excellence. The family
must again become the focal point and the
support system. They must be involved in the
educational system and stop allowing our schools
to be a place to pass the time. Parents must
actively participate in encouraging moral
development. A belief in a spiritual being greater
than man is essential.
Alexander Solzhenitsyn best describes the
challenge we must face when he states, “the
world has not come to its end, it has approached
a major turn in its history equal in importance
to the turn from the Middle Ages to the
Renaissance. It will exact from us a spiritual
upsurge, we shall have to rise to a new height of
vision, to a new level of life where our physical
nature will not be cursed as in the Middle Ages,
but even more importantly, our spiritual being
will not be trampled upon us in the Modern Era.”

power to destroy us all. Even worse, leaders have
learned to wield their powers and use these
grotesque weapons for thier own selfish purposes.
Tferrorists run rampant and harm innocent people
simply to prove they can and proudly claim
responsibility. Something must be done to end
this spiritual decline and it must be done soon!
In a conversation with Euthedemus, Socrates
once said that “men who do not know, but are
deceived in their own powers, are in the same
predicament whether they face human beings or
human enterprises. They do not know what they
are doing or what they are dealing with. They
make every sort of mistake, losing what is good
and falling into evil.” This is precisely our
predicament. We have failed to embark on a
program of self-examination and therefore
continue to perpetuate a very dangerous
philosophy. Until we do so, the atrocities we have
learned to accept in the West will continue. We
must recognize the limits on our technology and
that ultimate truth is beyond our influence. This
will require drastic changes in both our
educational system and our family structure. We
must realize the necessity of teaching morals to

12

�Sarah Grimke’s Letters
By Paul Schukman
Course: American Literature
Instructor: Carolyn Logan
After reading one of the suggested authors, write a paper that considers the following questions: Should
this writer—because of her ideas or her skill as a writer—be included in the canon of American Literature?
Should students of literature be as familiar with this writer as with writers usually anthologized? Do you
recommend that we read this writer?.

Christian culture, this subjugation was justified
and codified by the concept of original sin as
recorded in the Book of Genesis. This dogma is
based on the premise that Eve, having succumbed
to temptation, lured Adam to do the same. This
in turn supposedly prompted God to place Eve
in a position of subservience to Adam.
Ms. Grimke brings up several salient points
which expose the fallacy of this assertion. First
of all, if we accept the Biblical account of
creation, Adam and Eve were both made in God’s
image, and, therefore, equal. Grimke claims that
neither was intended to dominate the other. The
Book of Genesis (3:16) states, “and thy desire
shall be to thy husband, and he shall rule over

Sarah Grimke, in Letters on the Equality of the
Sexes and the Condition of iVomen, describes the
social, economic, political, and intellectual status
of women in 1834. This work is a compilation
of letters she wrote to Mary S. Parker, President
of the Boston Female Anti-Slavery Society. The
letters objectively and concisely describe the
discriminatory attitudes and practices of that era,
and Grimke did so without either anger or malice.
The historical and sociological information they
provide make them of interest to the
contemporary reader.
Grimke’s first letter deals with the theological
dogma which resulted in the subjugation of
women. She points out that, in the Judeo13

�department in social, domestic, and
religious life with dignity (34).
She points out that this contrasted with the
opportunities males were afforded at that time
for furthering their knowledge and cultivating
their minds. As she states.
And whilst he (her husband) goes abroad
and enjoys the means of improvement
afforded by collision of intellect with
cultivated minds, his wife is condemned to
draw nearly all her instruction from books,
if she has time to peruse them; and, if not,
from her meditations whilst engaged in
those domestic duties, which are necessary
for the comfort of her lord and master (23).
One cannot help but wonder how many Marie
Curies, Ayn Rands or Amelia Earharts were
denied the opportunity to contribute to the
welfare and improvement of our species because
of discrimination in the area of education.
In this work, Ms. Grimke is also concerned
with the manner in which men demeaned women.
In her words,
1 believe it will be found that men, in the
exercise of their dominion over woman,
have almost invariably done one of two
things. They have either made slaves of the
creatures whom God designed to be their
companions and their coadjutors in every
moral and intellectual improvement, or they
have dressed them like dolls, and used them
as toys to amuse their hours of recreation
(27).
Grimke also notes the economic disparity
between the sexes. She writes of “the
disproportionate value set on the time and labor
of men and women,” and she cites specific
examples of disparity of wages in such
professions as tailoring and teaching (50). This
situation, as she points out, was condoned by the
laws of our nation. She then comments on those
laws.
That the laws which have generally been
adopted in the United States, for the
government of women, have been framed

thee.” This statement appears to change the
equality of their relationship, and places Adam
in a position of dominance. However, Ms. Grimke
exposes a potential misunderstanding. She
explains that the Hebrew, like the French, word
for “shall” and for “will” is the same, and
Genesis was translated from Hebrew. If we
substitute “will” for “shall” in the passage, it
becomes, in Ms. Grimke’s words, a simple
prophecy. She states,
Our translators having been accustomed to
exercise lordship over their wives, and
seeing only through the medium of a
perverted judgment, very naturally, though
I think not very learnedly, or very kindly,
translated it shall instead of w/7/, and thus
converted a prediction to Eve into a
command to Adam; for observe, it is
addressed to the woman and not to the man
(7).
Grimke hints that what we might learn from
the incident in the Garden of Eden is that Eve
actually possessed the superior intellect. As she
observes
I shall not repel the charge (that women
have a lower intellectual capacity than men)
by any counter assertions, although, as was
before hinted, Adam’s ready acquiescence
with his wife’s proposal does not savor
much of that superiority in strength of mind
(9-10).
Another letter explains that the attitudes
toward women which evolved from the concept
of original sin continued to haunt females
through the years and affected every facet of
women’s lives. One of the most damaging
attitudes was that formal educaton was
unnecessary for women. In describing this
situation, Grimke condemned
... the disadvantages under which women
labor even in this country for want of an
education, which would call into exercise
the powers of her mind, and fortify her soul
with those great moral principles by which
she would be qualified to fill every
14

�almost entirely for the exclusive benefit of
men, and with a design to oppress women,
by depriving them of all control over their
property, is loo manifest to be denied (81).
We cannot dispute Grimke’s contention. It is
historically documented that our laws in 1834
treated women as either second class citizens or
as non-entities subject to domination by
husbands or fathers.
A distinquishing aspect of Grimke’s letters is
that she remains objective and optimistic.
Although she castigates men for the subjugation
of women, she does not entirely exonerate her
own sex. Regarding the double domination of
black female slaves, she indicates that the free
white women who accepted this condition
effectively condoned it. She states,
And although not personally involved in
the guilt, she loses that value for innocence,
in her own as well as the other sex, which
is one of the stronget safeguards to virtue
(54).
Nor does she appear to be uncaring or
dispassionate toward men. Instead, she explains
how placing women in the position of equality
which they deserve would be to men’s advantage.
Many women are now supported, in
idleness and extravagance, by the industry
of their husbands, fathers or brothers ...
and appear to think that their sole business
is to spend the hard bought earnings of
their male friends (54-55).
Grimke quite logically claims that women,
working for fair and equitable wages, would
increase the sense of dignity and self-esteem of
both sexes.
She is optimistic that discrimination and
subjugation will end through mutual
understanding, and appears to feel that this new
condition is imminent, as we see in the following
passage.
I rejoice, because I am persuaded that the
rights of women, like the rights of slaves,
need only to be examined to be understood
and asserted, even by some of those who

are now endeavoring to smother the
irrepressible desire for mental and spiritual
freedom which glows in the breast of many,
who hardly dare to speak their sentiments
(15).
Grimke contends that examining discrimination
would lead to understanding, the end of
discrimination, and that this would eventually
add to the dignity of the entire human race. She
believes this could be accomplished without
either sacrifice or by conferring special privilege.
Grimke herself states that she did not expect
special consideration.
But I ask no favors for my sex. I surrender
not our claim to equality. All I ask for our
brethren is, that they will take their feet
from off our necks, and permit us to stand
upright on that ground which God designed
us to occupy (10).
Letters to Ms. Parker are a very effective
manner in which to present this information.
Being letters, they are casual, informative, not
overly didactic, and the reader immediately
develops a rapport with Ms. Grimke. Ms.
Grimke’s diction is occasionally archaic by
current standards. Note the use of terms such as
“whilst.” Her syntax is often formal, frequently
lofty, as well it might be when discussing such
an important subject. Nevertheless, her letters are
quite readable.
The most striking element of her style is her
irony, which results in some sharp jabs at men.
One such comment questions Adams’s
superiority in strength of mind, while in another
she equates husband with lord and master. Of
course the irony is that the letters assert
throughout that no one has a worldly lord and
master. This sort of irony lends enough humor
to a serious matter to enhance its readability.
1 am pleased to have the opportunity to read
Ms. Grimke’s work. Her insights, irony,
documentation, and humanitarian nature are all
remarkable. Perspectives of this nature should not
have to be ferreted out by the serious scholar, but
should be boldly presented to even the most

15

�casual students of history, literature, and
humanities. In order to offer students a complete
education, at least some of these letters should

be presented in even high school literature and
history texts. This work most certainly has a place
in our anthologies.

Works Cited
Grimke, Sarah. Letters On The Equality of the Sexes and the Condition of Woman. Boston: Source Book Press, 1970.

16

�Lab Report
By Timothy E. Gardner
Course: Introduction to Digital Electronics
Instructor: Joe A. Schaffner
This was a technical report for a decoder-driver.

Parts and Materials List

1—74LS08 Quad 2-input AND gate
1—74LS04 Hex inverter
1—74LS47 4-input 7-segment decoder/driver
1—7-segment SEA 3110 RE Common Anode Light Emitting Diode

17

�Objectives:
To construct and evaluate a two-line to four-line decoder using the above diagrammed
ICs. Then using a decoder/driver and 7-segment LED to construct a number counter
and observe their operation.

Procedures:
)
1.

Using the 74LS04 Hex inverter and the 74LS08 AND gate and constructing the
circuit shown below, we will proceed with a truth table and observe the output
indications. These show four distinct lights, representing 0, I, 2 &amp; 3 respectively
as shown in the truth table below.

18

�■J )—
| )—:©;
d )—
.I* O—

A

A

B

Yo Y, Y2 Y3

O

O

1

O

0

0

O

1

O

1

0

0

1

O

O

O

1

0

1

1

o

O

0

I

19

�2.)

Use the 7-segment LED and the 74LS47 Decoder/Driver illustrated above to
construct the circuit shown below. The outputs of the 74LS47 will go through
330-OHM resistors which act as current limiting devices and help prolong the life of
the LED. Pins 3, 4 &amp; 5 of the 74LS47 will not be used in this exercise. Operate the
inputs for binary numbers 0000 through 1001, which represents the decimal numbers
0-9. The truth table shows the binary numbers and their decimal number output.

20

�A

B

c

D

Y

O

O

o

o

O

O

O

o

1

I

o

O

1

o

2

o

O

1

1

3

o

1

o

o

4

o

1

o

1

5

o

1

1

o

6

o

I

1

1

7

1

o

o

o

8

1

o

o

1

9

Conclusions:

This lab provided us with the opportunity to construct decoder circuits, thereby
gaining an understanding of how they operate and how they operate in normal
applications. In the first circuit a binary decoder was constructed using the 74LS04
Hex inverter IC and the 74LS08 AND gate IC. Applying the inputs according to the
truth table we observed how the decoder converted binary numbers to decimal numbers
with the LEDs representing the decimal numbers 0-3. Next, using the segment LED
and the 74LS47 Decoder/Driver we observed how the decoder/driver converts the
binary number inputs and converts them to decimal numbers and drives the LED
to display the equivalent decimal number.

21

�Sales Promotion Plan
By Cindy Norman
Course: Advertising
Instructor: Gary M. Donnelly
Students were to complete an advertising campaign or sales promotion plan as part of the requirements
for the course. The projects were later turned in for DECA competition; this plan won first place at the
Slate level and fourth place at the national level. The project also had visuals as part of the presentation.

presently located in the new building), have
offered to assist in the promotion.
The participant will be responsible for
1. Providing a new name for the building
representative of its location, heritage, and
depicting an updated image of
professionalism.
2. Redesigning an existing flyer.
3. Target a market consisting of
a. Accountants
b. Attorneys
c. Geologists
d. Insurance
4. Prepare advertising for appropriate media.
5. Work within a $5,000.00 budget.

Posidon Statement
The participant is an employee of Wyoming
Management Company located in Casper,
Wyoming. The company invests in commercial
real estate and has recently acquired an office
building located at 100 North Center in Casper.
The judges will be assuming the role of manager
for the Wyoming Management Company.
’ Objectives

The participant has been requested to prepare
a 30 day sales promotion plan that will achieve
75% occupancy of the newly acquired office
building by August 1, 1987. Executive Secretarial
Services and Josef’s Restaurant (two businesses
22

�Promotion Plan

C It is recommended outdoor banners be
placed on the north, south, and west sides
of the building to attract attention of
passing motorists. The east side does not
present a clear view from Second Street
due to several high rises opposite the street
from Casper Business Center. The north
side is visible from 1-25, the west from the
business loop, and the south is visible
from Outer Drive.

I. Name
A. Casper Business Center is suggested as
a possible name consideration. It is short
and concise, easy to recall, immediately
presents the building’s location, nature of
business, and denotes activity.
II. Image
A. Since the building has a history of
elegance and sophistication, it is
recommended this legacy continue. The
building’s decor supports this image and
can be incorporated into the advertising
media and promotional plan. Selecting a
typeface reflecting elegance should be
used for all copy in newspaper ads, flyers,
letterheads, and business cards. Radio
spots should reflect a sophisticated style
to correspond with the printed media.
Standardization of these areas will help
the public produce an association of this
style to the Casper Business Center.

IV. Promotion
A. Using the past to promote the present,
Casper Business Center can immediately
relay a positive association with the
professional community of Casper which
participated in regular open house
presentations during the “boom” days.
By following tradition and holding an
open house reminiscent of the better days,
Casper Business Center can attract a large
majority of the market segment that will
be able to view for themselves the
professional elegance, convenience, and
warm atmosphere it offers. The open
house is recommended for the fourth
Friday in July, from 4:00 p.m.-7:00 p.m.,
using the following traditional methods:
1. Send engraved invitations.
2. Participate in a radio live remote.
3. Have the affair catered.
4. Offer special rates: 6 month lease @
56 price if signed before August 1.
Offer door prizes: 6 month free lease,
free or discounted secretarial
services, free or discounted dinner
packages at Josef’s.

III. Media
A. There are five radio stations in Casper.
Of these, KTWO is recommended due to
their more sophisticated programming,
their coverage of major business and
financial programs, and their average
listening audience consists of the mature,
adult professional. KTWO offers a
Saturation Plan package that provides the
best overall coverage for the dollar.
B. The Wyoming Management Company
has an existing contract set up with the
local newspaper, the Casper Star-TVibune.
On the basis of its access to the majority
of the business segment in the community
and outlying areas, this media would be
sufficient to meet the needs of the
company as the sole source of newspaper
coverage. Use of out-of-state newspaper
media would not provide an acceptable
return on the dollar.

B. It is recommended a press release be
issued the first Sunday in July in the local
newspaper annouuncing the new
management, name, and operational
objectives. This should be followed by ads
placed consecutively each Wednesday and
Sunday of the month. Ads announcing

23

�B. Design new flyer
C Get manager’s approval on work
D. Assemble lobby presentation
E. Prepare and issue press releases
F. Select and order invitations
G. Contact outdoor sign company
Josef’s
A. Obtain temporary liquor permit for open
house
B. Arrange for serving help for open house
C Prepare food for open house
D. Submit list of door prizes
Executive Secretarial Services
A. Prepare and send invitations for open
house
B. Prepare certificates for door prizes

the open house should be placed the
Wednesday, Thursday, and Friday of the
open house in correspondence to the radio
spots.

C It is recommended a display showing
the various businesses of professional
importance to the target market and their
proximity to the Casper Business Center
set up in the lobby of the building during
the 30 day period. A display showing the
two main Boor plans, building parking,
Josef’s, and Executive Secretarial Services
will also be established.

July 1
July 5
July 8
July 12
July 13
July 15
July 19
July 22
July 23
July 24

July 26
July 29

Schedule of Events
Begin KTWO Radio Saturation Plan B.
Set up displays in lobby.
Newspaper release of new mangement,
name, objectives.
Newspaper ad #1 - 2 x 3
Newspaper ad #1 - 14 page
Invitations sent.
Newspaper ad #2 - 2 x 3
Newspaper release of Open House.
Newspaper ad #3 - 14 page
Newspaper ad ^3 - 14 page
Newspaper ad #3 - 14 page
Open House
Newspaper ad #3 - Vi page
Newspaper ad #1 - i4 page
Newspaper ad #2 - 2 x 3

Budget
Radio-KTWO Radio
$ 450.00
Live remote
1,194.00
Saturation Plan B
Outdoor Advertising-Palmer Outdoor Signs
3 Banners (4' x 6 9
$ 225.60
Newspaper-Casper Star Tribune
Owners had an existing contract
set up with the newspaper, so this
was not to be included in budget
0.00
costs
S

Printing-Oil City Printers
Invitations
Typesetting
Flyers

Open House
Food
Beverage
Help
Decorations
Naps/cups
Postage
Supplies
Photographs
Film/processing
Total

Responsibility Sheet
Manager
A. Approve all work (ads, design, copy)
B. Interface with Josef’s and Executive
Secretarial Services concerning promotion.
Participant
A. Select typeface for printed media, prepare
copy for radio spots, select background
music for radio

24

$ 125.00
21.58
98.86

$ 400.00
200.00
90.00
80.00
30.00
110.00
52.00
$ 160.00
$3,237.04

�Statement of Benefits to Establishment
1. Will create a new image depicting
IK',,-. &gt;
professional elegance and convenience.

4. Will provide complete and comprehensive
coverage of media use and stay under
budget limitations.

2. Will make the professional community
aware of a new facility offering professional
luxury.

5. Will provide opportunity for building a
positive rapport with existing businesses in
the building and with the local professional
community.

'

3. Will help achieve and measure proximity of
75^0+ occupancy by August 1.

25

�Las Marismas de Espana
By Kerri Smith
Course: Spanish Composition and Conversation II
Instructor: Lynda Durham
Students submitted a three page, type written paper on any aspect of Spain.

Las Marismas (The Tidelands) de Espalia esla^
cerca de Sevilla y El Rocio y estaal principio del
Rfo Guadalquivir. Esta aproximadamente
cuarenta millas del norte al sur, y treinta y cinco
millas del este al oeste. Trescientos mil acres de
Las Marismas es de marismas y el resto es de
tierra piano, sin agua.
Las Marismas es el lugar donde pjppietarios
crecen los toros bravos. La region de Las
Marismas es famosa por los toros de Concha y
Sierra. Los tor^ bravos de color gris fueron
traidos por el Rio Guadalquivir por los Romanos
hace mas de dos mil ^os.
Las Marismas es el corazon del campo del sur
y es muy diferente e interesante en cada

temporada. Empezamos con el invierno. En el
invierno, el Rio Guadalquivir nunca es totalmente
congelado, pero en lugares hay bastante hielo
para llevar pajaros pequelios, no animales. Es
muy lluvioso, y el agua cubre la tierra en muchos
lugares. El cielo es el color de gris durante
tormentas, pero el resto del tiempo es de un azul
royal. Las Marismas es producto del oceana Hay
muchas tempeslades en el enero. El invierno en
Las Marismas es un descanso para los pajaros,
los animales, las plantas, y la genie.
La Primavera de Las Marismas es cuando la
lluvia no es tan frecuente, y la hierba crece donde
el agua estaba. Con la hierba, vienen mas pajaros
e insectos y la tierra parece m^s vivo. Es un
26

�perfecta del otc^o en Las Marismas. Ahora
muchos de los pharos vuelan a lugares de nYas
calor.
Las Marismas de Esp^a es posiblemente el
lugar mejor que Esp^a tiene para los
naturalistas. Es una region buena para los
ecologistas porque de sus animales y cada
temporada diferente y bella. Pero h^ problemas.
Las Marismas necesita proteccion contra las
personas que quieten usarlo para el agua en las
marismas. Si las personas est^ permitidas usar

tiempo de recobro.
El verano en Las Marismas es un esplendor.
Es muy caliente con temperaturas en los cienlos.
Hay rfos pequdffos, pero es todo del agua del
invierno. Es un poco lH.ste porque patos y otros
pharos de agua est^n en busca de agua pero
muchos de ellos mueren porque no hay Iagos
suficientes. Ahora en el verano no parece como
una marisma. Los Caballeros mueven sus vac^
para vivir en la tierra de hierba. Cerca del Rio
Guadalquivir, plantadores de arroz trabajan con
mosquitos y temperaturas malas y horas duras.
Como arroz, los melones crecen muy bien en el
clima de Las Marismas en el verano.
En el otcmo, cuando no hay lenweraturas
calientes, es mas f^cil trabajar. Ta^i^, la Iluvia
empieza otra vez, pero no muchisimo como en
el invierno. La pintura de Goya de la vindimia,
que est/en el Prado en Madrid, es una imitacion

automoviles y maquinas en Las Marismas, Las
Marismas posiblemente desapareciera. N^esita
ser protegido contra una situacion como wta. Si
Las Marismas desapareciera, muchos^e los
animales, las plantas, y los pajaros morirlan. Fue
dicho que Las Marismas muriera en 1985, pero
yo no sZsi ocurrio o no.

27

�We Are All Genuises
By Crystal Havely
Course: Forensics Competition
Instructor: Gale Alexander/Gretchen Wheeler
This speech was written for forensics competition in Informative Speaking; it won one first, one third,
and one fourth place award during (he 1986-87 forensics season.

You’ve all heard the expression: “Birds of a
feather flock together” but what does that
actually mean? Does it mean:
a) All songbirds stick together.
b) If you see a group of birds they will
probably be the same color.
c) People tend to congregate with others like
themselves.
d) Birds without feathers are not accepted by
birds with feathers.
Obviously the answer is C, people tend to
congregate with others like themselves. That was
pretty easy now wasn’t it? Well, let’s try another
question; this may be a bit more difficult: “If
Sally’s daughter is my son’s mother what

relationship am I to Sally if I am a male?” ...
This is a little tougher, isn’t it? He would be
Sally’s son-in-law.
Let’s try one more; this one is a classic: Which
of the following best completes the series above.

(a)

28

(b)

(c)

(d)

�knowledge about your own goals, motivations,
limitations and your overall self-concept.
Gardner utilizes pro basketball star Larry Bird
to illustrate his theory of intelligence. Bird has
a sixth sense as to where to throw a basketball.
He has to know where his teammates are, judge
where they are likely to go, and use analysis,
inference and problem solving in deciding which
play to make next. Gardner states, “In these
decisions a multitude of intelligences are
involved. Even in the bodily movements alone
there appears to be a reasoning process.’’
This example illustrates very pragmatic skills
and abilities which we can all utilize in our
everyday lives.
Intelligence is viewed in pragmatic terms also
in a second theory. Yale psychologist Robert
Sternberg views intelligence as resembling
common sense. In his book Beyond IQ, Sternberg
breaks intelligence into three parts. The first is
componential. This includes the actual mental
mechanisms which allow us to reason. These
components form the foundation of our
intellectual capabilities. With this foundation we
then move to the second part of intelligence,
which he terms as experiential. This simply refers
to our application of our knowledge and skills
to our experiences. In doing this we establish a
data bank of our personal experiences, which we
refer to when faced with a perplexing situation.
To complete the theory we have the third factor
of intelligence, contextual. This focuses on our
relationship to our environment. This
relationship, Sternberg believes, is very dependent
upon tacit knowledge, tacit knowledge being the
knowledge which we are never formally taught.
He thinks that by possessing this tacit knowledge
we are better able to adapt to or change our
environment to meet our specific needs.
Sternberg’s triarchic theory can be summarized
as intelligence being the ability to take the
components or mental mechanisms (#1), apply
them to your experience (#2), to better select or
shape your environment to meet your specific
needs (#3).

The answer is B.
What we’ve all experienced is the taking of a
somewhat shortened IQ test. I’m sure you all did
better than I did when I first took it; after all you
probably all have more money than 1 do and you
are all certainly taller than 1 am, since 1 am only
five feet tall. After all, it has been scientifically
proven that people who are wealthy and tall tend
to score higher on intelligence tests, as do people
who are near-sighted, left-handed and asthmatic.
Well, I guess as far as intelligence goes, I’m just
out of luck—since I’m poor, short, right-handed,
far-sighted and in fairly good health.
Do you believe what the experts say? Do these
characteristics have anything to do with
intelligence? Or should 1 first ask what exactly
is intelligence?
This question has been asked by man ever since
he first realized he could think. This curiosity
about our intellect continues primarily because
it is the only factor which separates us from the
world’s other creatures.
Today, let’s explore this phenomena of our
intellect by discussing 4 different theories of
intelligence:
1. Gardner’s 7 Factory theory
2. Sternberg’s Common Sense Approach
3. Baron’s Theory of Rational Thinking
4. Horn’s Incremental Process.
The first theory by Harvard psychologist
Howard Gardner defines intelligence as
consisting of at least seven broad categories of
mental capabilities, probably stemming from
different areas of the brain.
The first three are quite common:
1. verbal
2. mathematical
3. spatial
The next two are more commonly thought of as
talents rather than intelligences:
4. musical ability
5. bodily skills
Sixth (6) adroitness in dealing with others, or how
well you interact and communicate with others
and seventh (7) self-knowledge, which includes

29

�think of to do with a brick, one single brick.”
Well, let’s think about it for a moment. My first
idea is that I could throw it in self-defense, you
could use it as a door stop, ... a foot-warmer,
by placing it in your fire place, wrapping it in a
blanket and putting it at the foot of your bed.
You could eat it ..., if it was a brick of cheese
that is, and has anyone ever told you that you
were just one brick short of a load? Well, not to
worry, here you have it!
Although this test does seem a bit absurd, it
illustrates a very important idea that intelligence
increases as we grow older. Dr. Horn has found
that older people could think of more and better
ideas than younger people, simply because
they’ve been around longer and have experienced
more. It is also significant to note that this theory
directly contradicts Binet’s IQ theory and test
which indicate a decrease of intelligence of as
much as three to four points per decade after the
age of twenty.
With the discussion of these four theories you
can see that intelligence is a complex idea dealing
with a lot more than featherless birds, Sally’s sonin-law or dots in a box. Despite our personal
characteristics, whether we are rich or poor, short
or tall, intelligence is a characteristic which we
all share and a very, very powerful tool.
Intelligence is a concept that constantly
challenges our minds and it will probably
continue to intrigue mankind for the eternity to
come. Today, hopefully, I have provided some
insight to this phenomena we call our intellect
by discussing four basic theories of intelligence.
1. Gardner’s 7 Factor Theory
2. Sternberg’s Common Sense Approach
3. Baron’s Theory of Rational Thinking
4. Horn’s Incremental Process
With this, let’s test your IQ just one last time.
The question really is simple; “Intelligence is:
a) accumulated experience
b) pragmatic skills and abilities
c) a life-long incremental process
d) all of the above.

To illustrate his theory Sternberg has developed
more practical intelligence tests. Some of the tests
pose typical quandaries in business, politics and
science, while others test a person’s sensitivity to
non-verbal language cues.
Unlike Gardner and Sternberg’s theories,
basically that intelligence is inborn, a theory by
University of Pennsylvania psychologist John
Baron suggests that intelligence is a formal,
learned process of rational thinking. In his book
Rationality and Intelligence he outlines the
following seven guidelines' to teach people to
think more intelligently.
1. Ask yourself if you are avoiding thinking.
2. Actively seek evidence on both sides of an
issue.
3. Never be certain that an idea or plan can’t
be improved.
4. Ask yourself why you want something to be
true or false.
5. Know the origins of your beliefs and the
reasons for your decisions.
6. Never regard a belief or decision as final.
7. Don’t be afraid to have been wrong.
Baron believes that these suggestions can help
anyone He states, “Teaching people to think
rationally will make them more intelligent and
in ways that really matter.’’
All of these theories emphasize very useful
skills and abilities which we continue to
accumulate throughout our lives; and this fourth
theory directly addresses this idea of increasing
intelligence. Psychologist John Horn from the
University of Denver defines intelligence as being
an incremental process comprised of two factors.
The first factor is crystalized intelligence, or
simply the sum of a person’s knowledge and
experiences which they’ve accumulated in their
life. The second factor is long-term storage and
retrieval, or the ability to remember things from
long ago and apply them to present situations.
Dr. Horn administers a very interesting test to
illustrate his incremental intelligence theory. He
asks people, “How many different things can you
30

�Works Cited

Baron, John. Rationality and Intelligence. New York: Cambridge University Press, 1985.
Gardner, Howard. Frames of Mind' The Theory of Multiple Intelligences. New York: Basic Books, 1983.
Grosswirth, Marvin and Abbie Salny and the members of Mensa. “Are You a Genius?” Reader’s Digest January, 1986.

McKean, K. “Intelligence: New Ways to Measure the Wisdom of Man.” Discover October, 1985.
Sternberg, Robert J. Beyond IQ. New York: Cambridge University Press, 1985.
Sternberg, Robert J. “Human intelligence: the model is the message” Science 6 December 1985.

■Rotter, R. J. “Three Heads are Better than One” Psychology Today August, 1986.

31

�Computer Generated
Bode Diagrams
By Chris Stein
Course: Engineering Circuits and Systems
Instructor: Jim Best
The report is on a short laboratory assignment for the course

Purpose—To investigate the Bode diagrams of a circuit using Microcap.

Introduction—Bode diagrams are graphical representations of how the amplitude and
phase angle vary with frequency. These diagrams are most easily found using a digital
computer to plot the graphs, but rough sketches can be made by hand. Although the
Bode diagrams made by hand are straight line approximations, the intelligent use of
the computer can be greatly facilitated by first making some preliminary sketches by
hand.

32

�Circuit to be analyzed:

V2 = 0

(Vl-0)/100000 + sVl/4000000 = 0 = (V3-0)/500000 + sV3/50000000
Vl(40 + S)/4000000 = V3 {100 + S)/50000000

V3/VI = (S + 40)(50000000)/(S + 100)(4000000)

H(S) = 125(S + 40)/(S + 100) = 125(1 + S/40)(40)/(l + S/100)(100)
H(S) = 5(1 + S/40)/(l + S/100)

zero: w = 40 rad/s = 6.37 Hz
pole: w = 100 rad/s = 15.9 Hz

H(jw) = 20 log(5) + 20 log(l + jw/40) - 20 log(l + jw/100)
On the graph: hand plotted amplitude line = —*—*—*computer plotted amplitude line = -----------hand plotted phase angle line = / / / ■
computer plotted phase angle line = □ □ □

33

�CIRCUIT FOR BODE PLOT ANALVSIS

34

�' FREQUENCY : IBe.BeeBeDtBl HZ
DEGREES
PHASE flNGLE:-180.227
GAIN SLOPE : 195,64342E-05 DB/OCT

21.938 DB
GAIN
GROUP DELAY: 382.92868D-08 SEC
PEAR GAIN : 21.938DB/F: 100,000000+01

35

�Conclusion—The Bode diagrams plotted by hand and by computer were similar, but
the hand plotted graphs give only a rough idea of the actual break points that the
computer generates.
The phase angle plots start at -180 degrees instead of zero because of the inverting
effect of the op-amp.
There were no reasons for large errors in this lab because all of the components
used in the computer simulation were set to at least ±5*70 tolerance.
The hand calculated data was found using Laplace transforms, as shown in the first
section. The only place that an error could occur is during the translation of the zero
and pole into hertz, where calculator rounding did occur. For these reasons, errors
were negligible in this lab.
1 cannot think of anything that would improve this lab because it was straight
forward in its objectives and procedures.

§

36

�Children and Television
By Elizabeth A. Gardner
Course: Child Development
Instructor: June Winkel
The assignment was to “select a topic, related to children, which interests you; research it and develop
a term paper with bibliography!’

teaching them?
One of the major problems with children’s
spending all this time watching television is that
it is such a passive way to spend their time. They
are not actively doing anything. And young
children, especially preschoolers, learn by doing.
In a survey published in the 1972 Surgeon
General’s Report on Television and Social
Behavior, mothers of first graders were asked
“Suppose there wasn’t any TV—what do you
think your child would do with the time now
spent watching TV?’’ Not unexpectedly, ninety
percent of the mothers answered that their child
would be playing in some form or another if he
were not watching television. Play is all important

In this country today, over 98^o of American
families own at least one television set. Our
preschool children watch an average of three to
four hours of television every day; some watch
as much as five or six hours. Our elementary
school children watch an average of three to five
hours a day. The lower income and less educated
families tend to watch the most television. This
means that by the time a‘child graduates from
high school he or she may have spent more than
15,000 hours watching television. That same child
will have spent only 11,000 hours in a classroom.
Obviously, television is a major part in the lives
of children in the United States. What effect does
this have on our children? What is television
37

�to a child’s development. Children need to
experiment with concrete materials that they can
manipulate. They need to explore their world with
all their senses—sight, hearing, taste, smell, and
touch. They need to use their imagination and
have opportunities to be creative. How much time
will they have to do all these things so crucial to
their development if they are spending hours
every day watching television?
There have been studies done with elementary
age children on the difference between those who
are light viewers (one hour or less per day) and
those who are heavy viewers (four or more hours
per day). Teachers found that heavy viewers,
especially of fantasy violent shows, were less
cooperative, less happy, less succesful in their
relationships, less imaginative, and less
enthusiastic about learning, regardless of their IQ
scores. The heavy viewers have poorer reading
skills. This is probably because the light viewers
spent more time reading and reading takes
practice. Children who spend more time reading
are better readers. Heavy viewers also have fewer
hobbies and other activities. Once again, children
watching television are replacing, with passive
viewing, time that could be spent (and probably
would be spent) in active learning.
What are some things children are getting out
of the time they spend watching television?
Unfortunately, most television shows contain a
great deal of violence. Children watching
Saturday morning cartoons have the least chance
of escaping violence or of avoiding the heaviest
saturation of violence on all television. The
reason there is so much violence on television
shows is that it sells products. Both broadcasters
and advertisers know that children will watch a
fast, action-packed cartoon in preference to other
programs. Violence gets and holds their
attention.
What are the effects of watching this television
violence? Children may become less sensitive to
the pain and suffering of others. In order to
handle viewing all violence and aggression,
children have to desensitize themselves to it. This

can carry over into real life. Watching violence
on television may make them more likely to
behave in aggressive or harmful ways toward
others. A number of studies have been done
showing that children who watch aggressive acts
on television display increased physical and verbal
aggression. Research also indicates that a child
who already tends to be active and aggressive
becomes even more agitated by watching
cartoons, action-detective shows, and noisy game
shows. Parents may believe that watching
television will Quiet an active child, but the reverse
is true. These children need to be encouraged to
develop their imagination and find resources
within themselves. They cannot do this in front
of the television set.
Another area of television that is teaching our
children some things which we may not wish
them to learn is advertising. Television programs
have from 9‘/2 to 16 minutes of advertising per
hour. The average child watches about 20,000
commercials a year. Young children do not
understand that the purpose of advertising is to
sell a product and they have trouble
distinguishing between the commercials and the
programs. Sometimes the commercials are even
more interesting to them than the program. Ads
are usually loud and fast paced with lots of color
and action.
Children do not view commercials the same
way adults do. They can misinterpret information
in advertising. They are unable to judge an ad
or discount its extravagant claims. Children look
to adults to find out what is good or bad, so they
easily believe advertisements that are delivered by
an adult. Often the advertisement has the quality
of an order to a child, not a suggestion. What
do commercials try to sell to children? A great
deal of sugar coated cereals, snacks, candies,
cookies and fast food. Is this what we want our
children to be encouraged to eat? The majority
of the rest of commercials shown during
children’s programs are for toys. Few youngsters
can understand that the exciting, fast-moving toys
and games shown on television are not as exciting
38

�in real life. Also children (like many adults) are
very susceptible to the subtle promise that
television advertised toys bring friends and love.
What can parents do to keep television from
being a negative influence in their children’s lives?
The following are a few suggestions.
First of all, and it is the most obvious solution,
you can turn the television off. Your child may
think you are depriving him, but you will know
better. Offer alternatives to television viewing,
such as books, games, puzzles, art projects and
the like. The earlier that you begin this with your
child, the easier it will be. The less time that your
child spends with television, the better he will be
at finding his own “projects” to do and
entertaining himself.
You should definitely at least limit your child’s
viewing. You can sit down with your child and
a program schedule and discuss what she wants
to watch. There are some good quality programs
on television, if you are very selective.
Educational channels are a good source for these.
And there are no commercials, which is a big
plus. With very careful planning, it is possible for
television to add to your child’s education,

instead of detracting from it.
You should examine your own television
viewing habits. See if you can set a good example
for your child.
It’s a good idea to watch television programs
with your child. First of all, you can find out just
what he is watching. You can also explain
commercials and just what their purpose is. You
can talk about the violence on a program—why
it happened, how painful it is and how the
conflict could be solved without violence, for
example. If a program is too violent, you can
make sure your child does not watch it again.
And with any program, it is good to discuss what
happened in it with your child afterwards. You
can explain his questions, discuss any problems
and bring up any points that you would like to
make clear.
We must remember that, for the large part,
what is on television is not there for the good of
our children, but for the good of the advertisers
and the broadcasters. Children are important,
and how they spend their time is critical to their
development. Let us give our children all the
opportunity we can to grow and flourish.

Works Cited
De Franco, Ellen B. TV, On/Off. Santa Monica, California: Goodyear Publishing Company, Inc., 1980.
Goethals, Gregor T. The TV Ritual. Boston: Beacon Press, 1981.

Greenfield. Patricia Marks. Mind and Media. Cambridge, Massachusetts: Harvard University Press, 1984.

Hays, Kim, ed. TV, Science, and Kids. Reading, Massachusetts: Addison-Wesley Publishing Company, 1984.
Kaye, Evelyn. The ACT Guide to Children’s Television. Boston: Beacon Press, 1979.
Lee, Barbara and Rudman, Masha Kabakow. Mind Over Media. New York: Seaview Books, 1982.

Singer, Dorothy G., Singer, Jerome L., and Zuckerman, Diana M. Teaching Televison. New York: The Dial Press, 1981.

Winn, Marie. The Plug-In Drug. New York: The Viking Press, 1977.

39

�Children’s Books
Relating to the Vietnam War
By Cathy Heaton Sondelski
Course: Literature for Children
Instructor: Charlene Davis

I realize this has affected my political and
sociological views of the world, and also that
persons directly involved in combat, or persons
who lost a friend or relative in combat, would
be equally if not more so affected. Our children
are filling the elementary schools in America
today, and their attitudes and views of our society
are quite naturally affected and influenced by us,
their parents. Teachers of this generation need to
be armed and ready to deal with questions and
wonderings and possibly hostile, or at least
negative, feelings from these children. So, with
this in mind, I began my search for relative
children’s books.
The public library in Casper offered basically

I am not sure just what I really expected in
searching for children’s books relating to the
Vietnam War. In the very recent past I have read
probably 30 adult books on the topic, ranging
from the first-person experience in combat to the
very dry (but informative) historical accounts of
the struggles in Southeastern Asia. I know that
I was wishing for such comprehensive coverage,
but on a child’s level, as 1 feel it is important to
address the topic of not only the war itself but
also the emotional adjustments ongoing in the
lives of veterans of that war. This is mainly
because of my age—mid-thirties—and my
involvement in the late sixties and early seventies
in the various forms of protest against the war.
40

�what 1 would term good color books for the
elementary level. All of these books make
interesting reading for adults as well, since the
experiences related and the information provided
are all factual and presented in a straightforward
manner. The titles by Gilson and Stanek are
refugee books, with the Gilson work being a
fictitional one and the Stanek book more of a
documentary.
For the more advanced readers in junior high
and high school, the books centered largely on
experience books rather than on color or refugee
titles. The works by Butterworth and Parks are
both true stories, with the Parks book being
autobiographical. Cross-Fire by Graham is,
among all the books I found, the only truly
“poor” work, in my opinion. Although the story
is appealing, it simply is not believable. The title
by Dareff is purely a history book and admittedly
dry, but makes excellent background reading and
should be on every junior high and high school
library list of required reading.
Although most of the books I located were of
reasonably high or very high quality for content
and composition, I was somewhat disappointed
in the smallness of the number of books
available. I will be watching to see if, in the next
few years, a larger number of titles relating to the
Vietnam War appear in our public and school
libraries.

ten (10) books in the children’s department
relating to the Vietnam war. Some of these were
actual combat autobiographies on the junior
high/high school level, and some were
elementary-age read-alouds with more emphasis
on the people and culture of the country of
Vietnam. Whatever the age level, almost all the
books were what I would call “dated” In that the
copyrights were largely late 196O’s and early
1970’s. A few were printed in the 1980’s, which
seems to leave a void of information on this topic
for a number of years. Interestingly enough, this
same situation occurs in the adult literature on
the Vietnam War. I would surmise that this void
coincides with a period of political unpopularity
on the topic, just as I would imagine that, with
the success of the movie, “Platoon,” there will
be a sudden resurgence of material for all ages
regarding the Vietnam War.
On the elementary level, I located both what
1 calf “color” books, or those which provide a
well-rounded look at the land, people, and culture
of the country of Vietnam, and basic
refugee/immigrant books, which give some
background information on pre-war life in
Vietnam, the experiences of being “boat people”
or land refugees, and the refugees’/now
immigrants’ adjustment to life in the United
States. The titles, listed in the bibliography, by
Nielsen, Nhuong, Lifton &amp; Fox, and Clark are

Works Cited
Butterworth. W. E. Orders to Vietnam: A Novel of Helicopter Warfare. Boston: Little, Brown, and Company. 1968.

Clark. Ann Nolan. To Stand Against the Wind. New York: Viking, 1978.
Dareff, Hal. From Vietnam to Cambodia: A Background Book about the Struggle in Southeast Asia. New York: Parents’ Magazine
Press, 1971.
Gilson, Jamie. 111. John Wallner. Hello, My Name is Scrambled Eggs. New York: Lothrop, Lee and Shepard, 1985.
Graham, Gail. 111. David Stone Marlin. Cross-Fire: A Vietnam Novel. New York: Pantheon, 1972.
Lifton. Betty Jean, and Thomas C. Fox. Photography Thomas C. Rax. Children of Vietnam. New York: Atheneum, 1972.
Nhuong, Huynh Quang. III. Vo-Dinh Mai.The Land I Lost: Adventures of a Boy in Vietnam. New York: Harper and Row, 1982.

Nielsen, Jon, with Kay Nielsen. III. Jon Nielsen. Artist in Vietnam. New York: Julian Messner, 1969.
Parks, David. Gl Diary. Photography same. New York: Harper and Row, 1968.
Stanek, Muriel. Photography Wm. Franklin McMahon. We Came from Vietnam. Niles, Illinois: Albert Whitman and Company,

1985.

§
41

�Reincarnation Through
Motivation
By Janet £. de Vries
Course: Business Management
Instructor: Liz Ott
The student could choose any subject that tied into the material presented in the textbook or the classroom
for a mini-term paper.

source, but according to Steers and Porter (1979,
p. 6), three common denominators seem to
characterize discussions of motivation: (1) what
energizes human behavior, (2) what directs or
channels such behavior, and (3) how this behavior
is maintained or sustained.
According to Steers and Porter (1979), one of
the most important lessons to be learned is that
managers must take an active role in managing
motivational processes at work. “Managing
motivation is a conscious, intentional behavior;
it is not something that just happens. Any
organization desiring to improve attitudes or

When asked if she believed in reincarnation,
a personnel chief for a New York City Health
Department replied: “Indeed yes. I witness a
demonstration every day at five o’clock when
dead employees come to life in time to go home”
(LeBoeuf, 1985, p. 19)
This story may bring a few chuckles, but deep
down we know that it’s true. There is a problem
in many American companies. Much of the
problem centers around motivation.
What is Motivation?
Definitions of motivation vary from source to
42

�work behavior must therefore accept
responsibility for active involvement and
participation if such changes are to be
successful.” (p. 562)
Expanding upon the concept of working at
motivating employees, Blanchard and Ihger
(1985, p. 132) point out that few employees are
working at their full potential or capability. Most
people do the minimum—just enough to keep
their jobs. The reason they found for this is
“management doesn’t know how to motivate
workers.”
Management must learn how to motivate
because this skill does not usually come naturally.
Managers must become aware that their efforts
can help an individual or a group increase their
work rate and quality to a higher level, perhaps
even to their capacity.
Although many managers do not know how
to motivate, part of the problem lies with the
workers themselves because people cannot be
motivated by external forces. ‘ ‘Motivation comes
from within. ‘Motivating people’ actually means
finding out how to tap into their inner
commitment by providing the recognition they
want.” (Blanchard and Thger, 1985, p. 133) Since
each person has different inner needs, it may be
impossible to motivate all of the individuals in
a group using the same recognition or reward.

(2) Working steadily and quietly. Activity does
not always mean productivity. “()uiet” workers
may actually be doing the bulk of the work.
(3) Simplifying. Employees who can simplify
procedures are worth their weight in gold.
(4) Creativity. Out-of-the-ordinary suggestions
can lead to cost-saving measures.
(5) Risk taking. Encouraging employees to be
responsible and then rewarding responsibility,
rather than punishing mistakes, can lead to great
possibilities, not just safe results.
(6) Solving problems. Managers should
cultivate a willingness to confront problems
rather than hiding or sidestepping. Employees
who confront problems learn in the process of
attempting to solve them. Complaining about a
problem without suggesting a solution oftentimes
does little or no good.
The ten rewards for good work suggested by
LeBoeuf are money, recognition, time off, a piece
of the action such as profit sharing or company
stock, favorite work, advancement to a new job
or an expanded and enriched job, freedom and
autonomy, personal growth through new
challenges or training and educational
opportunities, fun, and prizes. “Money and
recognition are the two most powerful rewards,”
according to LeBoeuf. (1985, p. 102)
The most commonly used motivational tool is
money, but “research shows that most careerdriven employees rank job satisfaction—not
money—as their primary work objective.” They
are willing to foresake short-term gain for long­
term professional growth. (B7zr, 1987, p. 44)

What to Reward
LeBoeuf (1985, p. 23) claims that the “Greatest
Management Principle in the World” is “The
Things That Get Rewarded Get Done.” First
managers must look at what is being rewarded,
then determine what needs to be rewarded.
Blanchard and Thger (1985, p. 133-135) suggest
that the first step in “harnessing motivation” is
to determine what should be rewarded. Things
to be considered are
(1) Long-range planning. Most organizations
recognize work which is most visible and has the
biggest short-term impact. Remember to
recognize work that contributes to the company’s
long-term growth and health.

Motivating Forces
Recognition drives motivation and
productivity, according to Blanchard and Ihger
(1985). But to increase motivation and
productivity, companies must determine what
they really want to reward and how to measure
it, then provide recognition for those who achieve
it. “Recognition is the key to shifting from an
organizational structure that rewards the wrong
things to one that taps into people’s inner

43

�I

J
I

I

way is to ask employees, as in the Dwight’s
motivation.’* (p. 136)
example. Now a conscious effort must be made
Ten motivating factors which have been used
by the Dwight’s manager to use the results to
for more than 35 years to determine what
improve attitudes and individual motivation.
employees want: good working conditions,
feeling “in” on things, tactful disciplining, full
Work as a Motivator
appreciation for work done, management loyalty
Ford (1979) argues that money is not the most
to workers, good wages, promotion and growth
powerful motivator. If it were, why do so many
with the company, sympathetic understanding of
people do volunteer jobs? “Meaningful work can
personal problems, job security, and interesting
be a powerful motivator. Money is a necessary
work. (Blanchard and Tager, 1985, p. 145-146)
element for the accomplishment of many jobs,
Blanchard and Thger’s survey results show that
but, as a work motivator, is an engine rurtning
managers want interesting work, full appreciation
on one cylinder?’ (p. 67)
for work done, promotion and growth within the
LeBoeuf’s rewards for good work sound great
organization, and feeling “in” on things.
at first glance, but again, motivation is an
According to managers surveyed, their employes
individual matter. Managers must determine
want good wages, job security, and good working
what reward will motivate each employee, which
conditions, but polling employees indicates that
is not an easy thing to do.
what they view as their strongest motivators are
One problem which is not addressed by many
many of the same things which the managers
management and motivational studies is that
want: full appreciation for work done, feeling
during bad economic times, such as the current
“in” on things, and sympathetic understanding
situation in Wyoming, companies cannot afford
of personal problems, (p. 146)
to reward thier productive and motivated
In a poll taken at Dwight’s Hotline Energy
employees with perks that cost money.
Reports in Casper, all of the employees picked
Something which is often overlooked by
full appreciation for work done as one of their
companies and managers is that “work itself can
top three motivating forces from Blanchard and
be a motivator;’ (LaBoeuf, 1985, p. 102)
Tkger’s list. Interesting work and promotion and
Ford (1979, p. 53) proposes a model for job
growth within the company followed in the
motivation which is based on this principle:
ranking (Mann, 1987, personal interview). The
(1) Let the employees know what the
Dwight’s office manager apparently knows his
organizations’ objectives are, especially for their
employees since he also picked the employees
particular segment.
highest responses as what he thought were most
(2) Let them know how their segment is
important to employees.
performing with respect to purpose and
Tactful discipline and sympathetic
objectives.
understanding of personal problems were not
(3) Start them on some part of the segment,
chosen by any of the Dwight’s employees as one
a reasonable module.
of their top three motivating forces. This may
(4) Let them have maximum control over what
reflect the current management of the office
they do. Give them the power to act, and increase
because these needs and motivating factors are
the control or power as they learn and earn the
already being adequately addressed.
right.
The other choices on the list received one to
(5) Let them do as much of the job fulfilling
three “votes” each, indicating that motivation
the purpose of the business segment as they can;
is an individual matter, reinforcing the previous
expand the job as they expand their ability.
statement that motivating people means finding
(6) If helpful, organize self-contained work
out how to tap into their inner commitment. One
44

�immediately after an action if it is going to have
much impact. Six months after the fact does not
have as much effect. The feedback must be
specific—what the person did or what the results
were. lulling the employee something to change
can have a positive effect on behavior. The
feedback must be for the benefit of the receiver,
not the giver. For example, yelling at an employee
when the manager is in a bad mood benefits the
giver. It is important to emphasize the positive
over the negative. A 4-to-l ratio is best. To insure
that the feedback is registering, have the employee
repeat it. (p. 140-141)
No feedback or ‘‘neutral response” is worse
than negative feedback. The result is reduced
motivation and poor performance. ‘‘The only
time neutral consequences fail to discourage good
performance is in those rare cases when the job
is truly self-actualizing—when the behavior itself
is so satisfying that no outside recognition is
necessary.” (Blanchard and Thger, 1985, p. 142)
Since most jobs contain tasks that are not self­
actualizing for employees, it is ‘‘the manager’s
job to provide the feedback that gives
satisfaction. When a manager fails to provide any
recognition for a task, the result may be the same
as if the employees had been punished.”
(Blanchard and Ihger, 1985, p. 142) Again, this
must be a conscious action on the part of the
manager. It doesn’t just happen.
The importance of feedback cannot be
overemphasized since it is directly related to full
appreciation for work done, one of the top
motivating factors mentioned previously.
Feedback is a low-cost motivational technique for
poor economic times as well as good times.
Positive feedback can make all the difference
in an employee’s attitude and motivation, no
matter what the job is. Keep the praise specific,
sincere and often. Don’t wait until review time.
(Blanchard and Ihger, p. 155)
Reincarnation of ‘‘dead” workers is definitely
a difficult but important task. Managers have the
responsibility to work at motivating employees,
starting with deciding what needs to be done and.

units, or mini-groups, of mutually supporting
workers so that a final product or service emerges
from the group.
(7) Give employees lots of feedback as to how
they are doing.
(8) Give them access to staff support for
information and expertise so that they can
perform more effectively within their own
segment.
(9) Give them access to the boss for knowledge
and support also.
Ford’s model for job motivation outlines ways
in which companies can structure jobs at a
minimal cost in order to make them more
meaningful and as a result help motivate their
employees. By setting objectives and goals, and
then reinforcing with frequent feedback, the work
itself can become a motivator and fulfill some
individuals’ inner needs.
Because American workers tend to do what
they are told and no more, Japanese plants in the
United States ‘ ‘rotate workers through many jobs
hoping that Americans will take on more
responsibility. Workers respond favorably, saying
it keeps them fresh.” (Copeland et al., 1987, p. 48)
Although the job rotation concept may have
the drawback of cost to train employees in several
jobs, the long-term advantage of seeing a project
or process from start to finish may help generate
cost-saving and other creative ideas. A second
advantage would be the ability to cover all jobs
during vacation or extended sick leaves. The
company would prevent the ‘‘I’m irreplaceable”
attitude by instituting job rotation.

Feedback as a Motivator
Meaningful feedback can also be a powerful
motivating device ‘‘The type of recognition that
inspires or discourages high performance is the
feedback you give on an ongoing basis—the pat
on the back, the scolding, or even the lack of
response that follows your people’s daily efforts.”
(Bainchard and Ihger, 1985, p. 139)
Blanchard and Thger (1985) stress that
feedback, positive or negative, must be given
45

�therefore, what should be rewarded. Then decide
what rewards or recognition the company can
afford. Frequent, meaningful feedback reinforces
that the company appreciates the work that is
being done, a low-cost, motivating force which
ranks high among workers and managers.
Managers can institute job rotation,
restructuring, enlargement and enrichment at a

minimal cost in order to make jobs more
meaningful and, therefore, more motivating.
In general, employees feel that management
does not know how to motivate. By instituting
some of the above-mentioned suggestions,
managers may be able to motivate their
employees and help them work at their full
potential.

Works Cited

Blanchard, M., and Tager, M. J. (1985). Working

Managing for Health and High Performance. New York: Simon and Schuster.

Copeland, J. B., Shapiro, D.. Williams. E. &amp; Matsumoto, N. (1987). How to Win Over a Japanese Boss. Newsweek, 2 Feb.
1987: 4648..
Ford, R. N. (1979). Why Jobs Die A What to Do about Ik Job Redesign A Job Productivity. New York: AMACOM, 1979.

Give Power to the People. Win. Day-Timers, Inc, Allentown, Penn., Feb. 1987.
LeBoeuf, M. (1985). The Greatest Management Principle in the World. New York: Berkley Publishing Group.

Mann, D. E. Personal interview. 3 April 1987.
Steers, R. M., and Porter, L. W. (1979). Motivation and Work Behavior. 2nd ed. New York: McGraw-Hill.

46

�Determination of Charge to
Mass Ratio for an Electron
By Doug Leonard and Bill Weber
Course: College Physics HI
Instructor: John Schroer
The students set out to determine experimentally the charge to mass ratio for an electron.

magnetic force F = evB. The magnetic force is
a centripetal force which causes the electron to
move in a circular path and F = ma = mvVr.
Combining these equations yields an expresson
for the charge to mass ratio e/m = (2V)/(r’B0.
If the accelerating potential, V, the magnetic field
strength, B, and the radius, r, of the electron’s
path can be measured the ratio e/m can be
calculated.

Purpose
Determine the charge to mass ratio of an
electron by measuring the path of a beam of
monoenergetic electrons in a magnetic field of
known strength.
Theory
Electrons accelerated through a potential
difference V acquire a kinetic energy
=
l/2mv’ = eV (the classical expression for E^ is
justified as long as E^/E &lt;0.01). If these
electrons enter a uniform magnetic field as
depicted in figure 1, they will be subject to a

Procedure
The apparatus consists of a special tube
mounted between two Helmholtz coils which give
47

�Figure 1

kinetic energy

= l/2mv’ = eV (equation 1)

m = mass of electron
e = charge of electron
V = velocity of electrons in beam
V = potential through which electrons are accelerated

magnetic force F = evB = mvVr (equation 2)

B = magnetic field strength
r = radius of the electron beam path
Solving eq. 2 for v we obtain: v = reB/m
Substituting for v in eq. 1 and solving for e/m yields:

48

e/m = (2V)/(r’B*)

�Figure 2

49

�potential and current in the Helmholtz coils, we
calculated values for magnetic field strength and
for the ratio of charge-to-mass of the electron.
These values are presented in tables 3 and 4.
Values for e/m were averaged for each circular
path and standard deviations and percent errors
calculated. Standard deviation and percentage
error values are also presented in tables 3 and 4.
Our values for e/m were consistently higher than
the accepted value and our percentage error was
higher when the electrons were deflected into
paths of smaller radius. The small values
calculated for standard deviation indicate that
our experimental technique was not at fault. In
fact, our S.D. values were nearly 100 times smaller
than our calculated values for e/m. Possible
sources of error are discussed in the conclusion.

a nearly uniform magnetic field near their center.
This magnetic field is given by the equation: B
= UoNJ/(125)'''’R when the distance between the
coils is equal to the radius of the coils (refer to
figure 2). This special tube generates a beam of
electrons with a known kinetic energy by
accelerating thermoelectrons (electrons given off
by heating an element) through a known
potential difference. The tube contains an inert
gas, which allows us to see the path of the
electrons as they ionize the gas. In addition, the
inside surface of the tube is coated with a
material which fluoresces when struck by
electrons. The tube and the Helmholu coils were
connected with voltage sources, ammeters, and
a volt meter as shown in the circuit diagram,
figure 3.
Once the circuit was connected properly, the
accelerating potential was set between 45 and 95
volts. The current in the Helmholtz coils was then
adjusted to deflect the electron beam into a
circular path of known radius. This was
accomplished by using the rings of known
dimension marked on the disk inside the tube (see
figure 4). When the electron beam was deflected
into a path of known radius, both the accelerating
potential, V, and the current in the Helmholtz
coils, I, were measured; these values were
substituted into the above equations for magnetic
field and the ratio equation e/m. This procedure
was repeated with four to six different
accelerating potentials for each path of known
radius. Data was collected for three different
circular paths. The data is summarized in tables
1 and 2. Two sets of data were collected because
we felt that our first set of data was in error when
we were informed that one of the ammeters we
used may have been malfunctioning, thus the
repeat. Upon closer inspection, we found that the
first set of data, although not as accurate overall
as the second, provided suitable values for the
experiment and so is included in this report.

Conclusions
One source of error that might account for our
values being consistently high is illustrated in
figure 5. The fact that the electrons were acted
on by the magnetic field even while they were
being accelerated causes them to emerge at an
angle. This results in our measuring a radius of
path smaller than the actual path taken by the
electrons in the tube. This smaller radius would
cause us to calculate a larger e/m value. It could
also be argued that this error is approximately
constant in size and would represent a greater
percentage error for paths of smaller radius. This
would account for our higher percentage error
while using the smaller rings. Another source of
error might be the influence of the earth’s
magnetic field. We attempted to offset this effect
by orienting the field from the Helmholtz coils
perpendicular to the earth’s magnetic field. The
strength of the earth’s magnetic field is about
O.lE-03 Tesla; this is approximately 3*Vo of the
Helmholtz field strength. The effect of the earth’s
magnetic field would have been minimal even if
we had not made an attempt to offset it. Another
source for error could be the fact that, when the
electrons ionize the gas within the tube, collisions
take place causing the electrons to lose some of

Results
Using the measured values for accelerating

50

�figure 3

O-JOO From Fbwer SuXCy

r

----------------------------------ijilr----------------j2a 7ariabie ResiSJor---------------------------------- *

'

51

�Figure 4

Figure 5

52

�diameter. One could also remove the ionizing gas
within the tube, but this would make the
experiment much more difficult if not impossible
to perform.
In conclusion, we found that the design of the
apparatus permitted us to calculate the ratio of
charge to mass of an electron by making relatively
simple measurements. Although the design of the
experiemni limits the accuracy with which e/m
can be measured, our results were consistent and
reasonable given the nature of the experiment.

their original kinetic energy. This would cause us
to calculate a smaller value for B and larger value
for e/m. Voltage and current measurements were
sufficiently accurate; we believe they were not a
source of error.
One possible way of improving this experiment
would be to limit the effect of the Helmholtz field
on the electrons while they were being
accelerated. One way of doing this would be to
make the apparatus bigger; the percentage error
would be reduced for electron paths of larger

Table 1
Data Set 1

Outer ring r = 0.010m
1 (amps)
V (volts)
62.1
2.27
2.39
68.2
2.52
75.0
2.64
83.3
91.2
2.78

Middle ring r = 0.0075m
I (amps)
,V (volts)
59.0
2.93
3.05
66.1
72,4
3.20
79.4
3.36
3.54
87.3

Inner ring r = 0.0050m
1 (amps)
V (volts)
3.80
47.5
4.24
60.5
4.68
69.3
65.2
4.50

Table 2
Data Set 2

Outer ring r = 0.10m
V (volts)
I (amps)
2.02
48.5
2.17
54.3
2.28
59.9
2.33
64.8
2.44
69.9
2.54
74.7

Middle ring r = 0.0075m
I (amps)
V (volts)
2.86
53.8
3.00
60.2
3.16
65.5
3.27
70.9
3.38
75.0

Helmholtz field constants
B = 8UoNI/(125)'/^R

B = (1.09E-03)I (Tesla/amp)

Uo = permeability of free space = 4-«’E-07 (Tesla—meters/amp)
N = number of turns per coil = 130
R - radius of the coils = 0.107 (meters)
53

Inner ring r = 0.0050m
V (volts)
I (amps)
3.98
49.5
52.9
4.10
4.39
61.5
64.6
4.43

�Table 3
Results Data Set 1

Outer ring r = 0.010m
e/m (C/kg)
B (Tesla)
2.48E-03
2.02E11
2.61E-03
2.00En
2.75E-03
1.98En
2.88E-03
2.01EI1
3.04E-03
1.97En

Middle ring r = 0.0075m
e/m (C/kg)
B (Tesla)
2.05E1I
3.20E-03
3.33E-03
2.12E11
2.10E11
3.50E-03
3.67E-03
2.10E11
2.07E11
3.87E-03

Inner ring r = 0.0050m
B (Tesla)
e/m (C/kg)
2.21E11
4.15E-O3
4.63E-03
2.26E1I
5.I1E-O3
2.12E11
2.15EII
4.92E-03

average

e/m =

2.00E11

2.09E11

2.I9E11

S.D. =

2.07E09

2.78E09

6.25E09

13.6

18.8

24.4

% error -

Table 4

Results Data Set 2

Outer ring r = 0.010m
B (Tesla)
e/m (C/kg)
2.20E-03
2.00E1I
2.37E-03
I.93E11
2.49E-03
1.93E11
2.54E-03
2.00EI1
I.98E11
2.66E-03
2.77E-03
1.95E1I

Middle ring r = 0.0075m
e/m (C/kg)
B (Tesla)
3.12E-03
1.97En
3.27E-O3
2.00E11
3.44E-03
1.97EI1
3.56E-O3
1.99EI1
1.97E11
3.68E-O3

Inner ring r = 0.0050m
B (Tesla)
e/m (C/kg)
2.10E11
4.34E-O3
2.12E11
4.47E-03
2.14E11
4.79E-03
4.83E-03
2.22E11

average

e/m =

1.97E11

1.98E11

2.15E11

S.D. =

3.27E09

1.41E09

5.26E09

11.9

12.5

22.2

^0 error =

Accepted value for e/m = 1.76EI1

54

�c

Spring 1988

�</text>
                  </elementText>
                </elementTextContainer>
              </element>
            </elementContainer>
          </elementSet>
        </elementSetContainer>
      </file>
    </fileContainer>
    <collection collectionId="212">
      <elementSetContainer>
        <elementSet elementSetId="1">
          <name>Dublin Core</name>
          <description>The Dublin Core metadata element set is common to all Omeka records, including items, files, and collections. For more information see, http://dublincore.org/documents/dces/.</description>
          <elementContainer>
            <element elementId="50">
              <name>Title</name>
              <description>A name given to the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85473">
                  <text>Casper College Challenge </text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="47">
              <name>Rights</name>
              <description>Information about rights held in and over the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85474">
                  <text>&lt;a href="http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/"&gt;http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/&lt;/a&gt;</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="41">
              <name>Description</name>
              <description>An account of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85475">
                  <text>This digital collection contains issues of Challenge, a publication of Casper College student writing from across the curriculum but outside of writing-specific courses. Issues of the publication date from 1987 to 1991 and 1993 to 1996.</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="51">
              <name>Type</name>
              <description>The nature or genre of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85476">
                  <text>Text</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="39">
              <name>Creator</name>
              <description>An entity primarily responsible for making the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85477">
                  <text>Casper College</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="44">
              <name>Language</name>
              <description>A language of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85478">
                  <text>ENG</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="43">
              <name>Identifier</name>
              <description>An unambiguous reference to the resource within a given context</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85479">
                  <text>CCA 04.ii.1996.01_Challenge</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="42">
              <name>Format</name>
              <description>The file format, physical medium, or dimensions of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85480">
                  <text>PDF</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
          </elementContainer>
        </elementSet>
      </elementSetContainer>
    </collection>
    <itemType itemTypeId="1">
      <name>Text</name>
      <description>A resource consisting primarily of words for reading. Examples include books, letters, dissertations, poems, newspapers, articles, archives of mailing lists. Note that facsimiles or images of texts are still of the genre Text.</description>
      <elementContainer>
        <element elementId="7">
          <name>Original Format</name>
          <description>The type of object, such as painting, sculpture, paper, photo, and additional data</description>
          <elementTextContainer>
            <elementText elementTextId="85503">
              <text>Print publication</text>
            </elementText>
          </elementTextContainer>
        </element>
      </elementContainer>
    </itemType>
    <elementSetContainer>
      <elementSet elementSetId="1">
        <name>Dublin Core</name>
        <description>The Dublin Core metadata element set is common to all Omeka records, including items, files, and collections. For more information see, http://dublincore.org/documents/dces/.</description>
        <elementContainer>
          <element elementId="50">
            <name>Title</name>
            <description>A name given to the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85494">
                <text>1988 Challenge</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="47">
            <name>Rights</name>
            <description>Information about rights held in and over the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85495">
                <text>&lt;a href="http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/"&gt;http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/&lt;/a&gt;</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="56">
            <name>Date Created</name>
            <description>Date of creation of the resource.</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85496">
                <text>1988</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="41">
            <name>Description</name>
            <description>An account of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85497">
                <text>1988 issue of Challenge, a publication of Casper College student writing from across the curriculum but outside of writing-specific courses.</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="51">
            <name>Type</name>
            <description>The nature or genre of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85498">
                <text>Text</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="39">
            <name>Creator</name>
            <description>An entity primarily responsible for making the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85499">
                <text>Casper College</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="70">
            <name>Is Part Of</name>
            <description>A related resource in which the described resource is physically or logically included.</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85500">
                <text>Casper College Challenge, CCA 04.ii.1996.01 WyCaC US. Casper College Archives and Special Collections.</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="43">
            <name>Identifier</name>
            <description>An unambiguous reference to the resource within a given context</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85501">
                <text>CCA 04.ii.1996.01_Challenge_1988</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="42">
            <name>Format</name>
            <description>The file format, physical medium, or dimensions of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85502">
                <text>PDF</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
        </elementContainer>
      </elementSet>
    </elementSetContainer>
  </item>
  <item itemId="8007" public="1" featured="0">
    <fileContainer>
      <file fileId="8358">
        <src>https://caspercollege.cvlcollections.org/files/original/7d1ffc80964b8e00dd9cfdf859982659.pdf</src>
        <authentication>24fc90a98fb12e3ff3feeb03db2ff31d</authentication>
        <elementSetContainer>
          <elementSet elementSetId="4">
            <name>PDF Text</name>
            <description/>
            <elementContainer>
              <element elementId="92">
                <name>Text</name>
                <description/>
                <elementTextContainer>
                  <elementText elementTextId="85481">
                    <text>CASPER
\CMP£/t COUEEE

WYOMING

CukLUNBC

�CHALLENGE—In every academic discipline,
to study, to think, to express clearly one’s knowledge and
understanding in suitable written forms.

�Introduction
Casper College is pleased to present the first issue of Challenge, a magazine to honor
excellence. As a display medium for academic endeavor, Challenge solicits superior
examples of student writing from all college disciplines; our purpose is to illustrate
both the breadth and depth of course work on our campus. Instructors have selected
representative writing from their courses, and, though we do not include pieces from
writing classes, we encourage all forms; exams, reports, essays, term papers.
This first issue represents work submitted in response to the original call for papers
for only one semester, fall 1986. We hope Challenge will become an annual publication,
covering two semesters in each subsequent issue.

Casper College
Casper, Wyoming
Spring, 1987

�Incidents in the
Life of a Slave Girl
By Nancy Torbert
Course: American Literature
Instructor: Carolyn Logan
For this assignment each student chose a woman writer from the eighteenth or early nineteenth century,
read the work, and wrote a paper that considered the following questions: Should this writer—because
of her ideas or her skill as a writer—be included in the canon of American Literature? Should students
of literature be as familiar with this writer as with writers usually anthologized? Do you recommend that
we read this author? Why or why not?

5

�In view of these things, why are ye silent, ye free men and
women of the north? Would that I had more ability! But my
heart is so full, and my pen is so weak! There are noble men
and women who plead for us, striving to help those who
cannot help themselves. God Bless them! God give them
strength and courage to go on! God bless those, everywhere
who are laboring to advance the cause of humanity!
Harriet Brent Jacobs
(Linda Brent)

Linda Brent should be included in the canon of
American Literature because she is a skilled
writer with excellent form and expression,
because she deals with ideas of permanent and
universal interest and because her writing
represents an important, often quelled, chapter
in our American heritage.
Brent has a purpose and a cause for writing
and she skillfully crafts and organizes her
autobiography to create an effect, to accomplish
her intent. She writes not to attract attention to
herself or her suffering; “on the contrary, it
would have been more pleasant to me to have
been silent about my own history” (xiv). She
writes instead to “arouse the women of the North
to a realizing sense of the condition of two
millions of women at the South, still in bondage,
suffering what I suffered, and most of them far
worse. I want to add my testimony to that of abler
pens to convince the people of the Free States
what Slavery really is” (xiv).
One of the crafts Brent uses to create the
desired effect is parallel structure, which gives
emphasis and equality to each clause and
thought.
“Could you have seen that mother clinging
to her child, when they fastened the irons
upon his wrists; could you have heard her
heart-rending groans, and seen her
bloodshot eyes wander wildly from face to
face, vainly pleading for mercy; could you
have witnessed that scene as I saw it, you
would exclaim. Slavery is damnable! (22).
The repeated phrases “could you have seen,”
“could you have heard,” “could you have
witnessed,” implore the reader to look, to hear,
to sentiently witness the horrors of slavery. Brent
speaks of the inferiority of the black man and
attempts to explain what makes him so.
“It is the ignorance in which white men
compel him to live; it is the torturing whip
that lashes manhood out of him; it is the
fierce bloodhounds of the south, and the
scarcely less cruel human bloodhounds of
the north.” (43)

Incidents in the Life of a Slave Girl, by Linda
Brent, is the autobiography of an incredible
woman, an uneducated mulatto slave who
sacrifices her principles, her values and seven
years of her life in order to escape the poisonous
fangs of slavery and secure freedom for her
children. She is intelligent, she is strong, she is
committed. “I had a women’s pride, and a
mother’s love for my children. My master had
power and law on his side; I had a determined
will. There is might in each” (87). Linda Brent
escapes, but not before spending seven years in
a nine foot by seven foot by three foot attic,
protected from the elements only by a thin layer
of shingles. In winter she is cold; in summer the
heat is unbearable; when it rains she is wet. The
only air and light she receives come to her
through a one inch hole, the only contact she has
with her two children, who are unaware that she
continues to exist. As she lies cramped and
confined, she sews, she reads, she writes and she
crawls on hands and knees for exercise. Her
muscles ache and atrophy from lack of use, but
the hope of freedom never dies. “The war of my
life had begun; and though one of God’s most
powerless creatures, I resolved never to be
conquered” (17).
Being an incredible woman with an incredible
story is perhaps not criteria enough to be
included in an anthology of American literature.
Following a strict definition of literature
proposed by Webster, the criteria includes
excellence of form or expression and ideas of
permanent or universal interest (304). To this I
would add that an important function of
American literature is to acquaint the reader with
the heritage of America. Judged by this criteria.

6

�The repetition of phrases and the rhythm created
by the parallel structure clarify and emphasize
Brent’s thoughts and statements.
Brent unifies her story and her writing with
various metaphors which create controlling
images. Her master, like many slaveowners, is a
vile and viciou.s animal who preys on those who
are defenseless and unprotected.
“My master met me at every turn,
reminding me that I belonged to him, and
swearing by heaven and earth that he would
compel me to submit to him. If I went out
for a breath of fresh air, after a day of
unwearied toil, his footsteps dogged me. If
I knelt by my mother’s grave, his dark
shadow fell on me even there.’’ (27)
“No animal ever watched its prey more narrowly
than he watched me’’ (37). Brent is forever hunted
by the cunning master and is always attempting
to elude the traps set for her. “1 knew my master’s
offer was a snare, and that if 1 entered it, escape
would be impossible’’ (86).
Brent’s recurring pattern of snakes and snake
imagery is a deliberate device, though not
fictional, to arouse emotion. Just after her Initial
escape, she hides in a thicket of bushes and is
bitten by a poisonous reptile. “Suddenly a reptile
of some kind seized my leg. I could not see what
it was; I only knew it was something cold and
slimy. In my fright, I struck a blow which
loosened its hold, but I could not tell whether
I had killed it’’ (100). In another of her attempts
to escape, she is taken to a hiding place, a snakeinfested swamp.
“As the light increased, I saw snake after
snake crawling round us. As evening
approached, the number of snakes
increased so much that we were continually
obliged to thrash them with sticks to keep
them from crawling over us.’’ (115)
“But even those large, venomous snakes were less
dreadful to my imagination than the white men
in that community called civilized” (116). Brent
uses the effect created by this concrete snake
image as a metaphor for slavery and slaveholders.

“O, the serpent of Slavery has many and
poisonous fangs!” (63). The treacherous vipers
follow her even after her escape and are always
coiled, ready to strike. She is cautious in her every
step. “Hot weather brings out snakes and
slaveholders, and I like one class of the venomous
creatures as little as I do the other” (179). The
blow Brent strikes at the reptile seizing her leg
is synonymous with the blow she strikes against
slavery in attempting to escape and arouse others.
She is able to loosen its hold, but is unable to
kill it.
Brent’s most effective literary device in
achieving her intent and arousing deep emotion
is contrasts, which make both contrasted ideas
clearer than either would have been if described
by itself. In her appeals to the women of the
North, she contrasts the lives of free women and
slave women and often uses mother/child images.
‘O, you happy free women, contrast your
New Year’s Day with that of the poor bond­
woman! With you it is a pleasant season,
and the light of the day is blessed. Friendly
wishes meet you everywhere, and gifts are
showered upon you. Children bring their
little offerings, and raise their lips for a
caress. They are your own, and no hand but
that of death can take them from you.

But to the slave mother New Year’s day
comes laden with with peculiar sorrows.
She sits on her cold cabin floor, watching
the children who may all be torn from her
the next morning; and often does she wish
that she and they might die before the day
dawns. She may be an ignorant creature,
degraded by the system that has brutalized
her from childhood; but she has a mother’s
instincts, and is capable of feeling a
mother’s agonies.” (14)
For the white woman, beauty is a blessing; for
the black woman, beauty is a curse. “That which
commands admiration in the white woman only
hastens the degradation of the famale slave” (27).
For the white female child, the path from

�childhood to womanhood “was blooming with
flowers, and overarched by a sunny sky’’ but for
the black child, “the flowers and sunshine of love
were not for her. She drank the cup of sin, and
shame, and misery, whereof her persecuted race
are compelled to drink’’ (29).
Brent’s various artistic devices verify her skill
as a writer. But perhaps more important are her
ideas regarding her subject: the suppression and
oppression of one group of human beings for the
economic or egotistic advancement of another,
a topic that is or should be of permanent and
universal interest to all humane beings.
Brent is concerned with the effects of slavery
on her own people and on her white masters as
well. She realizes and believes that the system is
just as destructive to the white race as it is to the
blacks.

that it was “a great moral, social, and political
blessing; a blessing to the master, and a blessing
to the slave!’’ (125).
Linda Brent deals with reality, with absolute
truthfulness and her writing reflects an
important, though hidden, quelled chapter in our
American heritage Throughout our education we
are taught to believe that this country was
founded on the principles of freedom and
equality, that all men are created equal. Slaves
were beaten and left to die standing in pools of
their own blood; slaves were pressed in cotton
gins and left for the rats to feed upon (49); slaves
were hung by their feet, a fire kindled over them
from which was suspended a piece of fat pork.
“As this cooked, the scalding drops of fat
continually fell on the bare flesh” (46). Slave
women were sexually harassed and beaten, bribed
or starved into submission with “no shadow of
law to protect them from insult, from violence
or even from death” (26). Her children, usually
fathered by her white master, were “as marketable
as the pigs on the plantation” and passed “into
the slavetrader’s hands as soon a.s possible and
thus getting them out of their sight” (35).
Children of white, free women, fathered by black
men, were smothered, or sent where they are
never seen by any who know their history (52).
All of these atrocities were committed and
permitted by law. Those who witnessed these
atrocities were silent, neither condenming nor
condoning, just silent. Freedom, equality,
civilization—for whom? How better we might
understand the present if we were given a clear,
true picture of the past.
Through literary devices, through form and
expression of ideas, Brent succeeds in arousing
fear, anger, contempt. She also succeeds in
proving her skill as a writer, as a thinker, and as
an historian. She, therefore, meets the criteria
herein established for inclusion in the canon of
American Literature.
Testimony given, emotions aroused, she now
pleads for help, not for herself, but for those still
in bondage. She pleads for examination of a vile

“I was twenty-one years in that cage of
obscene birds. I can testify, from my own
experience and observation, that slavery is
a curse to the whites as well as to the blacks.
It makes the white fathers cruel and
sensual; the sons violent and licentious; it
contaminates the daughters, and makes the
wives wretched.
Yet few slaveholders seem to be aware of the
widespread moral ruin occasioned by this
wicked system. Their talk is of blighted
cotton crops—not of the blight on their
children’s souls.’’ (53)
Brent condemns the white slaveowners who
“satisfy their consciences with the doctrine that
God created the Africans to be slaves’’ (45). What
are Africans, anyway? she asks. “Who can
measure the amount of Anglo-Saxon blood
coursing in the veins of American slaves?’’ (45)
She also condemns those who beat, torture and
murder their slaves yet drape themselves in the
garb of religion each Sunday, then lay the
clothing aside “till Sunday returned again’’ (50).
Brent exposes even the politicians who witnessed
the numerous cruelties and abominations of
slavery yet stood before Congress and declared

8

�system destroying blacks and whites, north and
south.
“In view of these things, why are ye silent,
ye free men and women of the north?
Would that I had more ability! But my
heart is so full, and my pen is so weak!

There are noble men and women who help
those who cannot help themselves. God
Bless them! God give them strength and
courage to go on! God bless those,
everywhere who are laboring to advance the
cause of humanity!” (29)

Works Cited
Jacobs, Harriet Brent (aka Linda Brent). Incidents in the Life of a Stave Girl. Childs, Lydia Marie, ed. New York: Harcourt
Brace Jovanovich, 1973. Originally published in 1861.

Webster’s New Idea! Dictionary. Massachusetts: G. &amp; C. Merriam Company, 1978.

9

�Investigation of Kirchoff’s
Current and Voltage Laws
By Chris Stein
Course: Electrical Concepts
Instructor: Jim Best
to mite
atory exercise using the cathode ray tube in measurements; its objective was
to make AC and mixed AC and DC measurements with the scope.

Introduction: The Simpson 260 was used to make voltage and current measurements
in two circuits. These values were compared with values calculated using Kirchoff’s
voltage and current law.
Steps used to make measurements:
1) function switch set to de.
2) range switch to high enough
range
3) observe correct polarity
4) physically open circuit and
place ammeter in series

take care to watch meter for
too large a current or wrong
polarity
6) take care that no a.c
component is present that will
not show on the meter that
could damage it
5)

10

�Procedure Data:
Circuit Diagram 1:

Color Code Measured

Calculated

Measured

'Voerr

R

I.

33.67mA

33.7mA

0%

1

47±5%

44.0

6.4%

I2

33.67mA

33.7mA

0%

2

100±5%

100.0

0%

I3

33.67mA

33.7mA

0%

3

15O±5%

150.0

0%

I4

33.67mA

33.7mA

0%

V,

1.5825V

1.6 V

1.1%

V2

3.367V

3.3V

2.0%

V3

5.0505V

5.0V

1.0%

Vs

lOV

9.9V

1.0%

11

’/oerr

�Circuit Diagram 2:

CIRCUIT DIAGRAM 2 =

Calculated

Measured

Voerr

R

I.

10.67mA

10.2mA

4.4%

Ri

100±5%

100.0

0%

b

10.67mA

10.2mA

4.4%

R2

15O±5%

150.0

0%

I3

7.333mA

7.0mA

4.5%

R3

1000 ±5%

1010

1%

I4

3.333mA

3.37mA

1.1%

R4

2.2K±10%

2.17K

1.4%

I5

7.333mA

7.0mA

4.5%

3.333mA

3.37mA

1.1%

I7

10.67mA

10.2mA

4.4%

Is

10.67mA

10.2mA

4.4%

V,

1.067V

l.OV

6.2%

V2

1.6005V

1.5V

6.3%

V,

7.3325V

7.2V

1.8%

V4

7.3325V

7.2V

1.8%

V5

lOV

9.9V

1.0%

12

Color Code Measured

%err

�KCL at nodes A &amp; B
Node A
Calculated; I, +
=7.333 + 3.333-10.67 = -0.004
Measured: I3 + I4-I2=7.0-+3.37-10.2=0.17

2.4%err

Node B
Calculated:
Measured:

2.4%err

Irlj-Is = 10.67-7.333-3.333 = .004
I7-I5-I6 = 10.2-7.0-3.37 =-0.17

KVL for 3 loops

loop 1
Calculated: -lO+V.+Vj+Vj =-10+1.5825 + 3.367 + 5.0505=0.0
Measured: -9.9+V,+V2+V3=-9.9+1.6+5.5 + 5.0=0.0
loop 2
Calculated:
Measured:
loop 3
Calculated:
Measured:

-10+V, +¥, +V2=-10+1.067 + 7.3325 + 1.6005 =0.0
-9.9+V, +V,+V2=-9.9+1.0+7.2+1.5=-.2

V4-V3 = 7.3325-7.3325=0.0

¥4-73=7.2-7.2=0.0

0% err

undetermined
error

0% err

Information on VOM making current measurements

The d.c. ammeter circuit consists of a d’Arsonual meter movement in parallel with
a shunt resistor, as shown below. The purpose of the shunting resistor Rg is to control
the amount of current that passes through the meter movement. The shunting resistor
Rs and the meter movement form a current divider. Thus for a given d’Arsonual
movement, the full scale reading of the ammeter is given by Rg. When we change
the range switch on the VOM, it changes the shunt resistor to give us different current
ranges, d Arsonual meter movements have specific ratings. The significance of these
ratings is as follows: When the coil is carrying its rated current, the voltage drop across
the coil is the rated coil voltage and the pointer is deflected full scale. The current
and voltage ratings of the coil also specify the resistance of the coil, therefore indicating
its effect on a circuit, i.e. a 50mV,/mA movement has a resistance of 50 ohms. Diagram
below.

13

�AMMETER:

d ARSCLT/AL
MCNEMENT
Al-IMETER
TERMINALS

Precautions for use of the VOM when making d.c. measurements:

1)

Do not change the range setting of the range or function switches while the circuit
under measurement is energized.

2) Never disconnect the test leads from the circuit under measurement while the circuit
is energized.

3) Always turn the power off and discharge all the capacitors before the setting of
the switches is changed, or the leads disconnected.

4) Never exceed the circuit-to-ground voltage of the instrument (1000 V max).
5) Always connect the instrument in series with the ground side of the circuit.
6) In all d.c. measurements, make certain the power to the circuit being tested has
been turned off before connecting and disconnecting test leads or restoring circuit
continuity.

Reasons for errors in calculations and measurements
1)

The calculations in the KVL and KCL data on pg. 3 contained errors due to
rounding when the theoretical calculations were made.

2) All measurements contained errors due to resistor tolerance and disruption of
the circuit by the VOM.
3) Any measurements made with a VOM contain operator approximation error.

14

�Suggestions for improvement of lab to minimize errors.
1)

Use of a DMM instead of the VOM would give more accurate measurements and
reduce operator approximations error.

2) Use of resistors of tighter tolerance (1% instead of 5 or 10%) would give values
closer to theoretical.
3) Use of more significant figures would reduce rounding error.
Conclusions:

This experiment showed support for Kirchoff’s voltage and current laws, within
experimental error, (pg. 3) Experimental errors were acknowledged and suggestions
for correction were given on pg. 4.
This experiment also gave us practical knowledge of the construction of circuits
using actual resistors in a laboratory environment. Some groups, like ours, also used
an experimenters board and learned how to construct working circuits on one.
We all got more experience using the VOM that was introduced in Lab #1. The
measurements should have been more accurate than the first time just because we
are more experienced.
I consider this experiment a success because it proved its objective and provided
us with additional laboratory experience.

§

15

�Math Exam
Course: Theory of Arithmetic
Instructor: Maryanne Marietta

Directions
I.
2.
3.
4.
5.
6.
7.
8.

Example

Choose a number;
Double it:
Add 4:
Multiply by 5:
Add 12:
Multiply by 10:
Subtract 320:
Cross out the last two zeros! Compare the answer to the
number in step 1.

Why does the pattern work?

From the Arithmetic Teacher, April 1985

16

29
58
62
310
322
3220
2900
29

�by Cindy Bartz

The pattern works because, when you multiply the 4 added in step 3 by 5, you get
20. Then you add 12 to get 32 and multiply by 10 to get 320. Then in step 7 you subtract
the 320, leaving 0. And in step 2 you double your number, and in step 4 you multiply
it by 5. So you now have your number times 10. You multiply again by 10 in step
6, giving 100 times your number. Then in the final step you divide 100 times your
number by 100, leaving your number plus 0. You are multiplying your number by 100
and adding 320; therefore, if you subtract 320 and divide by 100, you will get your
number again.

by John Bolender
X

2x
2x + 4
5(2x + 4) = lOx + 20
7OX+2O + 12 = lOx + 32
10(10x + 32) = lOOx + 320
100x +320-320 = lOOx
100X - 0

By looking at the last step, we see that crossing out the last two zeros is the same
as dividing by 100, so somewhere above we must have multiplied by 100. By doubling
the number to start with, we get 2x. TVvo steps later we multiply by 5 and get lOx.
In the next step we multiply by 10 and arrive at lOOx or our number multiplied by
100. The addition of 4 in the second step creates excess baggage which eventually adds
320 to our total. This is disposed of in the second to the last step by subtracting 320.

17

�Jamake Highwater
By Amy Daley
Course: Native American Literature
Instructor: Jacqueline Valdez/John Meredith
The assignment was to write a research paper on some facet of American Indian culture and/or literature,
tying the culture to the literature as appropriate.

Among the aisles and aisles of children’s books
in the library, there are many stories written about
Indians. The authors of the stories know their
subject well. They have either worked on
reservations, grown up near an Indian family or
have done extensive research in the field of Native
Americans. However, one author stands out
above the rest. He is Jamake Highwater. He is
an Indian
Of Black feet/Cherokee heritage, Jamake
Highwater was born in northern Montana in the
year 1942. Like so many Indian families, his
family was forced to move about constantly
looking for work. When Jamake was nine years
old, his father left his wife on the reservation and

headed to Hollywood, taking Jamake with him.
His father became a stuntman and Jamake
remembers “spending the next few years just
sitting under walnut trees in the San Fernando
Valley” (Crichton 6). They made their home in
the back of a pickup truck.
Jamake claims that he was raised in a “very
traditional” childhood (Crichton 7). During an
interview, Highwater tells Sarah Crichton that
where ever he and his father were, they always
returned to the Blood Reservation in Canada or
the Blackfeet Reservation in Montana for the
“pow-wows, the sun-dances and all the other
special events” (7).
As a child, Highwater was aggressive with a lot
18

�of negative energy. He was very angry and hostile
to non-Indians. He recalls, “the white kids would
call us names, and for a long time I guess I took
it. Then finally I became a real ringleader, and
we’d beat the hell out of any kids who did that
to us’’ (Crichton 7).
This hostility was probably brought about by
a mother who was “very anti-white and very
racist” as Crichton puts it (7). Her bitterness grew
from the fact that her parents, like so many
Indians, starved to death during the Depression
(Crichton 7). Crichton adds that “her rage
became more severe when her eldest son was
killed his second day in the Korean War” (7).
By this time, alcoholism had destroyed his
father. What saved Highwater from his sick father
and the anger of his mother was that he had an
outlet. He could write. A teacher on the
reservation singled him out and, as Highwater
remembers, brought him an old typewriter and
demanded that he learn to use it (Crichton 7).
He has been writing ever since.
Jamake Highwater was forced to write his first
two books about rock’n’roll music under the pen
name of Jay Marks. The pen name was a product
of the 5O’s and 6O’s when Highwater found that
editors did not tike his name because it was too
difficult to pronounce. They also rejected his
pleas to write about Native America. Highwater
was very frustrated, but he insists, “It’s very
apparent an Indian wrote those books”
(Crichton 8). He claims that this is due to his
“Indian sensibility.” This is the same “Indian
sensibility” that is so apparent in many works
of Native American literature. In the interview
he explains:
It is a sensibility that includes not only a
strong sense of heritage but also a purely
Indian concept of reality and identity. To
the Indian mentality, dead people walk and
things go backward and forward in time,
and these are absolutely real and vivid ideas
to my head, our heads. And more than that,
the Indian world is one of the few worlds
where human identity is not a major issue

In this society, you’re not permitted any
kind of transformation. In ours, it is
expected. We can even change gender if we
want. (Crichton 8)
The 7O’s and 8O’s have proven to be more
receptive to Jamake Highwater. Editors are
begging him for books, not rock’n’roll books, but
books abour Native America.
Anpao-An American Indian Odyssey was his
first children’s book, written in 1977. It was a
Newbery Honor Book, an award given to only
the best in children’s literature. Scott Momaday,
the Native American who probably opened the
doors for other Indian writers, says, “It is a fine
piece of work, truly reflective of the oral tradition
and the rich heritage of Native American
storytelling. Its publication ought to be
considered an event of importance” (Jacket
notes).
The book is a collection of traditional tales
from North America Indian tribes woven into
one story that relates the adventures of one boy
as he grows into manhood. Like Scott Momaday,
Jamake Highwater has woven together the old
tales with his own creativity. Anpao is
Highwater’s own fictional character. The tales are
from no single tribe; however, every narration
comes directly from the Native American
heritage. Some of the tales are very old and some
of them are quite recent, referring to the
experiences of the Indians since the white man
invaded their country. He uses his character,
Anpao, to smoothly connect all of the stories.
Anpao is a brave young boy who falls in love
with the beautiful Ko-ko-mik-e-is. She cannot
marry him unless he has permission from the
Sun. So his journey is a long one, to the house
of the Sun to get his permission. Anpao journeys
through boyhood and the same time through
history. He also travels across the face of
America, encountering the different geography
and the different tribes. This is why the tales of
Anpao are selected from a large body of oral
history. Anpao is the son of the Sun and a human
woman. The Sun is married to the Moon. The

19

�about the struggle between Amana, a mother
who is trying to hold onto her culture, and
Jemina, her daughter, who is trying to grow up
in a white man’s world. This story is a
continuation of Legend Days; therefore, we see
the same style of writing. We are into the
twentieth century in this book. Highwater
examines how our country handled Indian
resettlement. He also looks at those who could
and those who could not cope with the changes
of their societies. Of the three books in the cycle,
this one is written in the most depressing tone.
We must keep in mind that when we speak of
Highwater’s books for children that we are
talking about the junior high age and older,
except for Moonsong Lullaby. I Wear the Morning
Star is the third book of the cycle and also the
latest of Highwater’s books for children. This
story is centered around Sitko, who is the
youngest grandchild of Amana. Growing up in
the white man’s world, he struggles to fulfill his
talents as an artist. He is very proud of his Indian
heritage, which he has learned so much about
through the ageless myths that Grandmother
Amana has told him. It is in this book that we
see many parallels between Sitko and the author
himself. There is the very broad parallel of Sitko
trying to make it as an artist in the white world
and Highwater’s own struggle of making it as a
writer in the white world. But, to be more
specific, Highwater’s father was an alcoholic
stuntman in Hollywood. Highwater also
remembers the times that he spent in the San
Fernando Valley. In the story, Sitko talks about
his father: “He was a drunk ... When we moved
to the San Fernando Valley, he got work doing
stunts” (Highwater 25). Another parallel is that
when Sitko’s mother moves in with a white man,
the man makes Sitko change his name from Sitko
Ghost Horse to Seymour Miller because “Sitko
wasn’t a good name” (Highwater 69). In Jamake
Highwater’s real life, he was forced to write under
the pen name of Jay Marks ... a more “white”
name Perhaps the most important parallel is the
fact that in Highwater’s life story and in the

theme centers on the union of the Sun, the Earth,
and the Moon. Highwater does an excellent job
with this use of words in the story. It is almost
a poetic language that he has adopted for this
book. Highwater’s intention of this book was for
it to “become a personal journey for readers who
wish to sail from one world to another” (246).
Another sampling of Highwater’s talent is a
book that was written for the younger child of
preschool or primary age. Moonsong Lullaby,
1981, lets us see the poetic side of Jamake
Highwater. This gentle poem centers around the
theme that the Moon watches over the night. It
is said, “the Moon sings to soothe the sleep of
the Sun as she makes her path across the night
sky” (Highwater Jacket). While the moon is
traveling across the sky, she observes the activities
of an Indian camp and the night life of the plants
and animals. Photographs enhance the beauty of
the words in this Indian lullaby.
Legend Days is the first book of the Ghost
Horse cycle, which traces the lives of three
generations of a Northern Plains Indian family.
In this story, eleven year old Amana is abandoned
in the wilderness when the smallpox epidemic
devastates her tribe. Grandfather Fox takes care
of her and gives her two sacred gifts: the courage
of a warrior and the prowess of a hunter. Gifts
such as these were those that only men received,
so she had to keep them hidden to survive. The
two gifts do keep her alive as she watches her
people disintegrate. In a review, Kate Flanagan
points out that the book is layered with
symbolism, the supernatural, spiritual richness
and a portrayal of everyday life among the people
of the Northern Plains (336). Holding the novel’s
different layers together is the strong
characterization of Amana—an inspiring
heroine, full of courage, strength and life
(Flanagan 336). It might also be noted at this
time that the Moon is also a very important
theme in this book as it is with all of Highwater’s
children’s books.
The second book of the Ghost Horse cycle is
The Ceremony of Innocence. In this book we read

20

�fictional story, it is the teacher who encourages
the boys to pursue their talents. Highwater’s
teacher had supplied him with a typewriter and
encouraged him to use it. In the story, Sitko’s
teacher recognizes Sitko’s ability, invites him to
join an Art Club, and encourages him to paint.
In the writings of Jamake Highwater, there are
many more similarities, themes, questions to
investigate. To mention just a few: the titles of
his books, the quotes in the front of each of his
books, his “in memory of’s’’ in the front of his
books, the unending symbolism and the
unending themes.
Jamake Highwater has made it in the white
man’s world. Along with the children’s books.

Highwater has written thirteen adult books, both
fiction and non-fiction. He is a poet, a playwright
and a journalist who has been published in
countless magazines. As he says with a broad
grin, “I’m like a kid in a candy store, I can’t say
no’’ (Crichton 8)! He is a man who loves his
work. The oral tradition has survived through his
writing and he is happy:
It’s marvelous, it’s super, I can finally write
what I want to write about: Native
America. Because, this is what I really
know about; this is what I feel; this is what
I’m at home with, this is what I’m best at.
(Crichton 8)

Works Cited
Crichton, S. “PW Interviews Jamake Highwater.” Publisher's Weekly 6 November 1978, 6-8.

Flanagan, Kate. Rev. of Legend Days, by Jamake Highwater, Horn Book 60 (1984): 336.

Highwater, Jamake. Anpao, An American Indian Odyssey New York: Lippincott, 1977.
----- . I Wear The Morning Star. New York: Harper &amp; Row, 1986.
----- . Legend Days. New York: Harper &amp; Row, 1984.
---- -. Moonsong Lullaby. New York: Lathrop, Lee &amp; Shepard, 1981.
---- -. The Ceremony of Innocence. New York: Harper &amp; Row, 1985.
Momaday, Scott. As quoted on jacket of Anpao, An American Indian Odyssey by Jamake Highwater. New York, 1977.

21

�In the Classroom
By Paula Brown
Course: Field Experience for Prospective Teachers
Instructor: Charlene Davis
After keeping a daily diary during your fifty hours of aiding and observing in a public school classroom,
write a brief paper describing and evaluating your experience. That was the assignment for each student.

“Nervous, scared, worried if I’ll do well or
open my mouth and put my foot in. Excited,
wondering if I’ll be able to remember names. The
office is within view. Oh dear, the secretary is
busy with a report of dogs on the playground.
She says ‘Hi’ and asks another person to take me
to Mrs. Baker’s room. The class has already
entered and are all seated. Well, here goes my
entrance. Relief: music is first on the list of things
to do, so I have some time to visit with Mrs.
Baker. She gives me a brief tour of the building
and back to the classroom. I get to help mark
names on reading books. Here they come, ready
or not; there’s no turning back now.’’
While re-reading my first day’s impressions, I

can laugh and ask myself why the nervousness.
The weeks seem to have gone by so fast. I will
really miss those 17 children whom I have come
to know and care about, who come up to me and
give me a hug, or hold my hand, or put their
heads on my shoulder, or ask me how to spell
a word, or would I please draw a picture for them
just as I did for another. Now, instead of just a
name on a reading book, each has a face and a
personality.
In these past weeks I have helped with phonics,
math, reading, spelling, handwriting, bulletin
boards; cut and pasted shingles; made broken
windows, bats, ghosts, and black cats for the
haunted house. I even had the opportunity to
22

�make “stone” soup. I was also given a day with
the kindergarten, which, believe me, was an
experience that will stay with me a long time. I
believe that everyone should spend at least a few
hours in a kindergarten class to gain a greater
respect for the teacher who decides to teach that
particular grade.
I really appreciated the opportunity that I had
to work with Mrs. Baker. As a teacher, she has
shown me her patience with the students, her
humor at the antics of some, her understanding
of what a second grader is going through, and
her concern when a child has a problem. The

principal and faculty have made me feel at home
and welcome. Grant school seems to be like one
big family, with everyone concerned about the
welfare of each other, as well as the children in
their charge.
As a practicum student, I feel that I get the
best “feel” for teaching when there is co­
operation between the teacher and student. I feel
that a student should not be used as an odd job
person, or just to cut paper.
I have thoroughly enjoyed being at Grant
school and will truly miss everyone, especially the
children.

§

23

�Reply Letter
By Robert Swanson
Course: Beginning Information Processing
Instructor: Lois Wright
With the advent of computer technology, people who write personal and business letters have adopted
new writing techniques. We are all acquainted with Publisher Clearing House’s well-known letters, “You
may already be a winner, Mrs. Robinson.” As a practical application of a daily assignment, in the form
letters below the student combined several files in a mailmerge procedure to create two unique letters.

24

�December 3, 1986
Mr. &amp; Mrs. Curtis Saugstad
Saugstad Farm
RR # 1
Alcester, S.D. 57001

CASPER COLLEGE
library
rare

BOOK
ROOM

Dear Curtis, Carolyn, &amp; Cliff:

1 made it back to Wyoming OK on Sunday. It took me about 14 Hrs. to get here.
The roads started getting bad after I left Gregory, S.D. They continued getting bad
until I got out of Neb. and drove into Wyo. Then the roads started getting better.
The roads were almost clear when I got to Douglas. I finally got home at four o’clock
our time.
I have already had comments about my haircut. I hope to use
the money for getting some more underclothes and other things
that I need.
Thanks for eggs, money, bread, and haircut and all your encouragement and the
good steak dinner on Saturday night that 1 enjoyed while I visited S.D.

WITH LOVE IN CHRIST,

ROBERT S. SWANSON

December 3, 1986
Mr. &amp; Mrs. Stanley Swanson
Swanson Farm
RR # 1
Alcester, S.D. 57001
Dear Dad and Hariette:

I made it back to Wyoming OK on Sunday. It took me about 14 Hrs. to get here.
The roads started getting bad after I left Gregory, S.D. They continued getting bad
until I got out of Neb. and drove into Wyo. Then the roads started getting better.
The roads were almost clear when I got to Douglas. I finally got home at four o’clock
our time.
I am wearing my jeans today in school as I am learning how
to run this computer. Had a good time while staying at your
house. Thank you, Hariette, for the meals and the coffee.
Thanks for bluejeans and helping me with my car and all your encouragement and
the Thankgiving dinner that I enjoyed while I visited S.D.
WITH LOVE IN CHRIST,

ROBERT S. SWANSON
25

�Lab Report
By James J. Jones
Course: Introduction to Digital Electronics (lab)
Instructor: Joe Schaffner
A technical report from an experiment in digital electronics. This report tests using transistor as a switch,
an inverter, and problems associated with transistor switching.

Objectives:
1. ) To operate the transistor as a switch.
2. ) To observe the inverting characteristics of a transistor.
3. ) To observe pulse parameter problems associated with transistor switching.
Parts Required:
1-2N3904 NPN transistor
1-57 ohms resistor
1-5.6K ohms resistor
1-1N914 diode
1-4.7K ohms resistor
1-50 pfd disc capacitor

Equipment Needed
1-dual trace oscilloscope
1-function generator
1-5V DC power supply

26

�•Vce 5vDC

DISPLAY

DISPLAY A

•5v

•2v

lOv Vt IKhz ov

4V?t llGiz w

-2m

-5v
'2m

4v

10 V % lOOlCiz ov

100 Khz ov

-2v

-5v

After connecting the above circuit we inject a lOV P to P, IKHz squarewave at the
input from the function generator, and + 5VDC for our VCC to the collector of our
transistor from the 5VDC power supply. We use channel “B” of our oscilloscope to
monitor the input signal. We connect channel “A” probe to the output, which is taken
from the collector of our transistor. We then inject a lOV P to P lOOKHz square wave
into our circuit. We then note that the output waveform is less than half of the
amplitude of our input waveform and 180° out of phase.
Upon insertion of the 50 pfd disc capacitor into the circuit, we note a drastic change
27

�in both our input and output wave forms.

This outcome, we believe, was due to the size of the capacitor.
TR (output rise time) = l msec
TF (output fall time)=2 msec

measured without the capacitor in the circuit

TS (delay swithching) = not mentioned

Conclusions:
1. )

We saw that the output waveform from our transistor was the inverse of our input
waveform. We proved this by placing the positive peaks of both waveforms on
the same reference line and the result was a continuous line across the oscilloscope
display. The same holds true for the negative peaks of the waveforms.

2. ) The capacitor was intended to smooth the output waveform. However since we
used a .OOlmf in place of a 50 pf capacitor, we encountered a sharp negative
spike on our output waveform and the positive peaks of our input waveform were
rounded at the leading edge. Therefore we could not get an accurate reading of
our rise and fall time with the capacitor in the circuit.

28

�Women Writers: A Search
for Identity Through
Common Experience
By Donna Nickerson
Course: Modern Women Writers
Instructor: Dr. Ilelon Raines
As part of a take home exam, each student wrote one essay to discuss a common theme as it is handled
by various writers, pulling together a minimum of three writers.

The search for a common identity and
common experience with other women writers
appears, from the abundance of material written
about, to, and on the subject of women as writers,
to be an important theme to those women who
attempt to use language to convey human
experience to the world at large.
Amy Lowell, writing about the poets Sapho,
Browning and Dickinson, refers to them as sisters
“of a strange, isolated little family” in her poem.

“The Sisters” (1301). The feeling of isolation
appears to be a common experience of women
writers. Adrienne Rich discusses at length, in
“When We Dead Awaken: Writing as Re-Vision,”
the difficulties of being a writer who is also
female. Rich, a self-defined feminist, gives voice
to the isolation women writers experience in a
profession controlled by males. Rich tells of how
she wrote for men, for male approval, shaping
her writing style around models of male approval.
29

�instincts,” that she would have become crazed
(Room 1382).
The obstacles Woolf recognized for sixteenth
century women writers she failed to fully identify
with herself publicly. By treating the obstacle of
male-dominated society as primarily a problem
of the past, Woolf abdicated to the male literary
world a portion of her power and truth. Rich
recognizes this softening of Woolf’s words (Re­
vision 2047).
Alice Walker, in “In Search of Our Mother’s
Gardens,” also addresses the effects of “contrary
instincts,” Woolf’s term for the opposing forces
of socialization and creativity (Room 1382), on
black women. Walker asserts that the oppression
of slavery on black women prevented their
writing; that had the “contrary instincts” of this
oppression not existed perhaps “crazy” black
women would “have been Poets, Novelists,
Essayists and Short Story Writers” (Mother’s
Gardens 2376).
Walker believes that the urge to create in such
an oppressive atmosphere led not to great black
women writers, but to a spirituality often labeled
as “crazy.” Woolfe, were she alive today, would
probably concur. She writes “.. .that any woman
born with a great gift in the sixteenth century
would certainly have gone crazed, shot herself,
or ended her days in some lonely cottage outside
the village, half witch, half wizard, feared and
mocked at” (Room 1382).
Rich and Walker look at women’s creativity
and struggle to write from slightly different
perspectives. Rich approaches the difficulties of
women writers from a decidedly feminist
viewpoint. Walker specifically looks at the
constraints imposed on black women. Even so,
both use Woolf’s writing as a catalyst to pursue
these two different threads of thought. And, even
as these perspectives are different, they are also
alike; they are about women creating art in a
world dominated by white male power.
Rich, Walker and Woolf appeal to women to
write, to give women a true voice. Each
understands that this act takes courage.

shaping her writing style around models of male
writing (2409). Having few women role models
to turn to for affirmation of her ability and
experiences in her earlier years of writing, she
kept her women subjects at a comfortable
distance, refusing to closely identify with them
(2050).
In “When We Dead Awaken,” Rich makes
several references to Virginia Woolf and it is
obvious that she identifies with her and what
Woolf terms “contrary instincts.” Rich recognizes
Woolf’s carefully phrased anger and
powerlessness in the face of the many “obstacles”
women writers face in creating their art (2048).
Woolf, in “A Room of Our Own” and
“Professions for Women,” discusses the
difficulties women writers have faced. When
Woolf ask.s “What is a woman?” she clearly is
seeking to uncover a common identity with other
women (Professions 1386). She might as easily
have asked “What is a woman who writes?” for
this is the question by which she seems to have
been troubled.
Further into “Professions for Women,” she
explains the difficulty women have of speaking
the truth about how they feel because of “what
men will say” (1387).
What we might view, as does Rich, as Woolf’s
timidity in confronting male-dominated society
was, in Woolf’s day, not without reason. Woolf
had few role models and no “women’s
movement” to support her. Even so, she
recognized and appreciated the women “who
have been before me, making the path smooth
and regulating my steps” (Profession 1384).
By Woolf’s time, writing had gained
acceptance as a profession suitable for women.
Women writers, however, had not gained the
power necessary to fully and truthfully speak.
Women’s socialization and the male definition
of woman suppressed women’s truth through the
written word. Woolf writes that had Shakespeare
had a sister, “her gift for poetry would have been
so thwarted and hindered by other people, so
tortured and pulled asunder by her contrary

30

�Rich, the most obviously political of these
writers, appeals to women writers to “re-name”
their experiences because to continue appeasing
men by mimicking their style and language will
only serve to constrain and frustrate women’s
creativity (Re-Vision 2052). She writes, “Re­
vision—the act of looking back, of seeing with
fresh eyes, of entering an old text from a new
critical direction—is for women more than a
chapter in cultural history: It is an act of

survival” (Re-Vision 2045). Rich places this task
on women in general, but particularly on women
writers.
No doubt there will be more written about the
difficulties of being a woman and a writer.
Certainly future women writers will look back at
these writings of Lowell, Woolf, Rich, and Walker
in an effort to find a common identity through
common experience.

Works Cited
Lowell, Amy. “The Sisters.” The Norton Anthology of Literature by Women. Ed, Sandra M. Gilbert and Susan Gubar. New
York, NY: W.W. Norton, 1985. 1300-04.

Rich, Adrienne. “When We Dead Awaken: Writing as Re-Vision.” The Norton Anthology of Literature by Women. Ed. Sandra
M. Gilbert and Susan Gubar. New York, NY: W.W. Norton, 1985. 2044-56.
Walker, Alice. “In Search of Our Mothers’ Gardens.” The Norton Anthology of Literature by Women. Ed. Sandra M. Gilbert
and Susan Gubar. New York, NY: W.W. Norton, 1985. 2374-82.

Woolf, Virginia. “Shakespeare’s Sister.” from A Room of One's Own. The Norton Anthology of Literature by Women. Ed.
Sandra M. Gilbert and Susan Gubar. New York, NY: W.W. Norton, 1985. 1376-83.
----- . “Professions for Women.” The Norton Anthology of Literature by Women. Ed. Sandra M. Gilbert and Susan Gubar.
New York, NY: W.W. Norton, 1985. 1383-88.

§

31

�Exam
By Sharon L. Spawn
Course: Principles of Economics I
Instructor: Robert Suedes
Question: Explain neo-classical theory with reference to
a. all components
b. the reasoning by which its advocates claim equilibrium is possible.

Neo-classical theory—or the over monetarization investment theory or the Austrian
theory

1) Problem: Standard of Living
2) Assumption on human behavior:

1.
2.
3.

people are greedy
act in self interest
acquisitive

(same as classical theory)
3) Proposition: Limit government and set a reserve requirement of nearly 100%.
4) Basic economic relationship: Standard of living is determined by the level of
employment.
5) Economic theory: 1. six assumptions
2.

I)D[ -I- SSl (Demand for labor -I- supply of labor)
32

�Agg. SS + Agg. DD (Aggregate supply + Aggregate
demand)
(1-3 same as classical theory)
4. Price Levels
a. Qm = P (Quantity of money determines level of
price)
b. Gresham’s Law: Bad or paper money drives out
good money
c. Fischer’s Quantity theory of money: small bills
circulate or turn over faster than large bills.
d. Fractional reserve banking or the monetarization
of debt allows for an even more rapid turnover
of money than Fischer’s theory. When a bank is
required to keep only a fraction of its money on
hand, it can lend the rest over and over and over
again. The same money is multiplied many times.
It ceases to be real. It is “near money” or
“book money.” This artificial stimulation and its
reversal leads to the business cycle.
e. Business Cycle
Definition: A 7\ (change) in production,
employment and income over a period of years.
3.

Expansion: Period of prosperity, a race to
produce more, employment up, business
expands by borrowing money, production
up, income up, profit up, DD is greater
than SS.
Upper turning point: Huge inventories become
a surplus of goods, prices go down to be

33

�competitive, repayment of debt uses all
capital, SS is greater than DD, profits go
down, production is down.
Contraction: Employment down! Prices down!!.
Business stops production, money is scarce.
Bankruptcies soar. Insolvent debtors are
wiped out. The survivors are left to rebuild,
reborrow.
Trough; The surplus is eventually sold off and
DD again is greater than supply. The
production will be stepped up through new
borrowed funds.
Measurement:
Agg SS - Agg DD

number of years
Timing: Different aspects of the economy react
in different time frames—all happen at the
same time

Causes;

External: f \ in weather, war,
sunspots, etc.

Internal:
Conclusion:

Solution:

in population

Since the main cause of the cycles is the monetarization of debt, and
one’s ability to borrow to purchase more units of capital with money
that is artificially stretched beyond its worth, if a reserve requirement
was set up of nearly 100%, it would limit the government’s printing
too much paper money.
Limit the amount of lending to the difference of voluntary saving and
hoarding. Put into effect the 100% reserve requirement.

§
34

�Video Sync Stabilizer
By Mike Wyckoff
Course: Reseach Problems in Electronics
Instructor: Miles Hecker
Using the data and information acquired from his research and the results from his experiments, the
student was to write a formal technical report, following the form established by the instructor.

Summary
A twentyfive-inch color console was purchased
which had no adjustment for vertical or
horizontal hold. Video movies would jump and
were unstable. Directions for a Video Sync
Stabilizer were found in an article. The problem
was a weak and distorted vertical sync pulse. A
video sync stabilizer circuit was constructed to
correct this problem. A printed circuit board was
used to help control noise in the circuit. One coil
had to be fabricated to replace a 7-12uH coil on
backorder. The power supply was built on the
main board and regulates at 12 volts. Detection
and regeneration of the vertical sync pulse was
accomplished by a zener, comparator, and two

NPN transistors along with the biasing network.
An RF modulator was included and combines the
video and audio portions from the VCR.
Alignment was done with a volt-meter. The cost
of the project was approximately forty dollars.

Introduction
Not long ago the video age invaded the
Wyckoff family, as well as millions of others. The
advantage of showing full length motion pictures
at home appealed to many families. The initial
cost was somewhat extensive when you consider
the cost of the video recorder (VCR); however,
the convenience far outweighs the cost. Video
tapes must be acquired either by buying or
35

�construct the project. Other sources were used to
clarify how the circuit works and what it does
for the internal circuits of the television receiver.

renting. In our case we purchased an RCA VHS
machine which had been used by a local video
club as a rental. The television (TV) connected
to the video recorder was an older Sears portable.
The family enjoyed watching various movies for
a period of about ten months before the television
developed a bad picture tube. Due to our
obsession with television, it was immediately
replaced with a new twentyfive-inch color
console. The television purchased differed from
the older one: we no longer had to adjust the
vertical or horizontal hold. Technology has
developed to the point where these two
adjustments are made by internal circuitry.
The new technology created a problem and the
problem was now apparent to all who viewed the
movies played on our new TV. The picture would
jump rather erratically and was generally
unstable. This happened to many movies, but not
all. The problem was a nuisance and rendered
some movies virtually unwatchable. Several
manufacturing companies advertised “add-ons”
for the owners of video recorders, such as video
enhancers and video stabilizers. We were happy
with the color and image of the movies we played;
however, the unstable picture was very annoying.
The average cost of the stabilizer would be
around fifty dollars and was rather unimportant
since many movies we liked were unstable enough
we could not enjoy them. The idea of building
a stabilizer from scratch was challenging. The
research for the needed data was started.
An article in Radio Electronics explained how
to build a Video Sync Stabilizer to correct the
unstable video by reinserting the needed pulses
some televisions need to lock on to the picture.
The following paper explains the construction of
the Sync Stabilizer that is now a permanent part
of my video equipment.

Background
In a video signal there are pulses which remain
the same even as the picture changes. These
pulses are known as the sync and blanking pulses.
When viewing them on an oscilloscope, a person
can see a short negative pulse, known as vertical
blanking-interval pulses, on either end of the
picture information. The pulse that causes the
primary problems with our system is the vertical­
sync pulse, which is contained within the vertical­
blanking interval and is partially distorted by the
copy guard procedures of the video movie
companies. Bernard Grob explains why sync
pulses are so important in Basic Television
Principles and Servicing:
It is important to remember that sync is
part of the signal and, therefore, that the
receiver must have enough signal to provide
a good picture for good synchronization.
When the signal is weak, the sync is weak
also. Then noise voltages can easily
interrupt the synchronization. In addition,
hum in the receiver can easily affect weak
sync, especially for triggering the vertical
oscillator. (Bernard Grob 353)

Layout
There are several ways to layout the design of
the project such as printed circuit board (pcb),
wire punch or wire wrap. Due to the frequencies
we are dealing with and the need for a very quiet
circuit, the printed circuit board is the only viable
method to use.
As soon as the decision was made to use the
printed circuit board, the plot was made The
ideal way to plot the traces would be to have used
Smart Work, a computer program that is capable
of designing a printed circuit board overlay. I
have been exposed to the program; however, the
version I used fell short of performing the task
the way I envisioned the circuit. The final overlay

Discussion
First of all a copy of the article was obtained.
Radio Electronics, January 1982, “Video Sync
Stabilizer” by Gene Roseth. This article
contained all of the needed information to
36

�was created by pen and paper. That overlay was
taken to a local business for transfer into
transparency. The transparency was then used in
the fabrication lab to produce the printed circuit
board. (Appendix E)

Comparator
The next circuit contained in the project is to
correct the distorted vertical sync pulse. The three
main components of this circuit are two bipolar
NPN transistors and a CA339 IC, a quad
comparator. The zener diode D8 clamps the video
containing the sync pulses to a plus five volts.
Both of the bipolar transistors are biased to
amplify and buffer the signal from the rest of the
circuit. The comparator and bipolar transistors
are given the same signal at the same time. The
comparator is biased so that every time a sync
pulse is received at pin five a pulse is generated
from pin two. Since the circuit must know which
sync pulse is showing up at the comparator R5,
R6, and C2 are used as an integrator. With these
components, only the vertical sync causes an
output at pin 1 of the comparator. The third part
of the comparator is used as a one shot
multivibrator. Mr. Roseth has engineered it to
have a time constant of 180uS, to match the
vertical-sync pulse interval. The remaining section
of the comparator is used to invert the
regenerated pulse from the multivibrator. The
inverted pulse is then mixed with the signal, from
D6, forming a video signal with the corrected
vertical-sync pulses. This video signal will be
strong enough to insure the internal circuits of
the television can have a signal strong enough for
lock-on. (Appendix C)

Procurement
The next step was to procure the components.
(The parts list is included within appendix D.)
Problems started to arise when the local
electronics suppliers informed me that the coils
required would have to be ordered. After seven
weeks one coil arrived; the other one had been
permanently backordered. Consulting with
several of the instructors at Casper College soon
led to fabrication of a coil to match the value of
the missing part. A form with a ferrite core was
obtained from Radio Shack and a supply of
twentytwo gauge magnetic wire was borrowed
from Mr. Ted Cross. The task of creating the coil
was greatly simplified by the use of an inductance
meter. Within half an hour a coil was
manufactured that would adjust from 7.2uH to
12.3uH. The coil it replaced was a Miller
23AIO5RPC that adjusted from 7 to 12uH. The
finished product was bathed in epoxy to hold the
coil together and soldered to the board.
Circuit Description and Operation
Power Supply
The first circuit contained within the stabilizer
is the power supply. The schematic for the power
supply can be seen in appendix A. It consists of
a step down transformer that steps the line
voltage down to twelve volts. The incoming AC
is then converted to DC by using a full bridge
rectifier. The filtering circuit consists of one
470uF capacitor. A twelve-volt regulator is used
to further regulate the output to the rest of the
circuit. The output of the regulator is connected
to a couple of capacitors to help keep noise out
of the rest of the circuit. Because we placed the
power supply on the same printed circuit board
as the rest of the circuit, the project is easier to
handle and takes a minimum amount of space.

RF Modulator
The final stage of the project was an RF
modulator. As the name denotes, this section
combines the video portion and the audio
portion from the VCR and sends it to the
television via channel three or four. This section
could have been deleted from the project since
the VCR contains an RF modulator. The RF
Modulator was built to allow connection of the
Sync Stabilizer to the front terminals of any VCR,
which bypasses the RF section inside the recorder.
The audio portion of the signal is fed into an OP
amp, and the corrected video is fed into an
LM1889, a television video modulator integrated

37

�circuit. A pin out is contained in appendix F. The
modulator is connected to its bias circuitry and
two tank circuits, one to supply a carrier
frequency and the other to supply an FM audio
sub-carrier. The tank circuit that tunes in the
carrier consists of LI and CIO. Consulting the
RCA SK Series Solid State Replacement Guide
on the modulator showed that the tank connected
to pin 6 and 7 serves as the channel tank, whose
Adjustment allows us to select either channel
three or channel four. The remaining tank is
made up of L2, C7 and is connected to pin 15,
the input for the sound tank of the modulator.
Mr. Roseth states in his article that this tank is
tuned to generate a subcarrier 4.5MHz above the
video carrier. (47) The audio signal that is fed into
the OP amp is amplified and sent along to a
bipolar transistor. The emitter of the transistor
is not used in the circuit. The base-collector
junction serves as a variable capacitor in parallel
with the sound tank. The output of the
modulator is pin 10. Before the output reaches
the jack a filter is used to filter out the lower
sideband of the TV signal to insure no
interference from a nearby channel. Resistor R31
is sized to match the output impedance. The
original circuit is matched for seventyfive ohms;
however, it may be changed to accept three
hundred ohm cable by changing R31 to a three
hundred ohm resistor. (Appendix B)

the IC’s and that the zener diode was regulating
at five volts. Mr. Roseth spelled out the alignment
procedure very well in his article, and stated that
it could be done with either a voltmeter or an
oscilloscope Once the voltage levels were checked
and pin 2 of 1C3 read seven volts, the VGR was
turned on and the alignment procedures were
followed according to the article Resistor R7 was
adjusted until pin one of ICl read ten volts,
meaning the vertical sync pulse was on its way
to be mixed with the original video signal.
Potentiometer R14 is used to adjust the amplitude
of the signal. The adjustment was made by trial
and error, and ended up being about one half a
turn. The channel tank of the modulator was
then adjusted to where a picture appeared on
channel three of the television. The biasing pot,
R25, was then adjusted until the picture was as
clear as possible. Adjusting the coil in the sound
tank brought the sound in.

Conclusion
The original project produced a stable picture
when tested for the instructor; however, it was
very poor quality. When the project was taken
home and connected to the video system the
results were quite different. A check of the coax
used in the test situation revealed that
connections were less than acceptable and the
coax was discarded.
The video sync stabilizer proved to be a
worthwhile project. It is a valued part of the
family entertainment center, and a conversation
piece, since it was homemade. The entire project
cost about forty dollars to build. Although
frustrating at times, the work involved in building
it proved to be quite educational.

Alignment
The job remaining was to connect the project
to the video recorder and television. Power was
applied to the sync stabilizer, prior to connection
with the TV and recorder, and a quick check was
made to insure that proper voltage was reaching

Work Cited
Grob, Bernard. Basic Television Principles and Servicing. McGraw-Hill, Inc., 1975.
Roseth, Gene. “Video Sync Stabilizer” Radio Electronics, January 1982, 45 et passim.

38

�APPENDIX A
12 VOLT POWER SUPP

�APPENDIX C
DETECTION AND REGENERATION

�APPENDIX D
PARTS LIST

R1 .R11------ 1 MEG OHMS
R2.R15.R30------ i K OHMS
R3.R5.R3.R13.Rlb.R2&lt;j,R32------ IO K OHMS
R4------ 12 K OHMS
R6.R21------ 33 K OHMS
R7. R14------ 2S H OHMS TRIMMER POT
R9----- ,0 meg ohms
RIO------ I.S MEG ohms
R12.R19------ 100 K OHMS
R17,R27.R2S------ 220 OHMS
R1S.R2y.R31------ 75 OHMS
R22.R23------ 15 K OHMS
R24------- 2.2 K OHMS
R25--------I K TRIMMER
POT.
R26--------100 OHMS

CAPACITORS
Cl-47uF 1 tv electrolvtic
C2------ . 022uF tnv I ar
C3.C10------ 75pF dioped silver mica
C4 , C1 1------ . 001 uF c e r am i c
C5------220uF 35v e1ec t ro1vt i c
CS.CIS------ luF 25v tantalum
C7----- lOOpf ceramic
C3----- OluF mvlar
Cy------ 22pF ceramic
C1 2 , C1 3 , C1 S------ . 1 uF mv 1 a r
Cl 4------ 470uF 25v electrolytic
SEMICONDUCTORS

IC1------ CA33y QUAD COMPARATOR
IC2----- 741 OP AMP
ICS----- LMlSSy VIDEO MODULATOR
IC4------ 7312 TUELVE-VOLT REGULATOR
&lt;31------ 2N3yO4
&lt;32------ 2N221 SA
&lt;33------MPSA05
DI ,D3,DF.,D7------ INyl 4
D4,D5------ 1N34A
DS------ 1N751A 5.1 2ENER
ER 1—BRIDGE RECTIFIER 1 A . SOV
T1------ 12.GV, 300MA
RS 273-1386
L1------ .071 -.0S2uH T.W. MILLER 4SA77SMPC
L2
7-12uH J.W. MILLER 23A105RPC
Fl
1/4AMP SAG PIGTAIL FUSE

�APPENDIX D
PARTS LIST

Rl .R1 1------ 1 HE'3 OHMS
R2.R1S.R30------ I K QHHS
R3.P5.RS.R13.R11.R20.R32
IO K OHMS
R4------ 12 K OHMS
R6,R21------ 33 K OHMS
R7. R14------ 25 f OHMS TRIMMER POT
R9------10 MEG OHMS
RIO------ 1 .5 MEG OHMS
R1 2 . R1 9
I 0&lt;? K OHMS
R17.R27.R2S------ 220 OHMS
RlS.R29.R31
75 OHMS
R22.R23------ 15 K OHMS
R24------- 2.2 K OHMS
R25------- 1 K TRIMMER
POT,
R26------- 100 OHMS
CAPACITORS
Cl-47uF 1 Sv electrolvtic
C2------ . 022uF rnV1 a r
CS.CIO------ 75pF dioped silver mica
C4 , C1 1------ . (j(? 1 uF c e r am i c
C-S------ 220uF 35v elec trcd vt i c
Ct., Cl 5------ luF 25v tantalum
C7------ lOOpf ceramic
CS------ .OluF mvlar
C3-------22pF ceramic
Cl 2,Cl 3,CIS------ luF mvlar
C14------ 470uF 25v electrolytic
SEMICONDUCTORS

ICl------ CA339 OUAD COMPARATOR
IC2----- 741 OP AMP
ICS----- LM1S3? VIDEO MODULATOR
IC4------ 7S12 TUELVE-VOLT REGULATOR
QI------2N3904
Q2------ 2N221 9A
03
MPS AO.5
01 ,D3,D6,D7------ 1N91 4
D4,D5------ 1N34A
DS------ 1N751A 5.1 ZENER
BRI—BRIDGE RECTIFIER 1 A.50V
T1
12.GV, 300MA
RS 273-I3S6
LI
.071-.0S2uH .J.U. MILLER 4SA778MPC
L2------ 7-1 2uH .J . W . MILLER 23A1 05RPC
Fl------ 1/4AMP SAG PIGTAIL FUSE

�3

�i'lppendix F"
L M11::&gt; ■; ■ - J V i d e o 111 r;i ij i j 1 a t n r

™ 1” 1 r U111 -3 1

d

i

r!""V in put

2

chroma bias

:3

cF’i B tank ....
‘l,

::h A tank..™::™.,

•

17 chroma osc out
16 chroma supply
15

B--V input
i:::irir:l

chroma lag

5

sound tank
f-?F supply

13 c F"i r 0 m a s u b c a r r i e r
7
B
3

12 vidoo input
11 ch A output
10 cl"i F3 output

�</text>
                  </elementText>
                </elementTextContainer>
              </element>
            </elementContainer>
          </elementSet>
        </elementSetContainer>
      </file>
    </fileContainer>
    <collection collectionId="212">
      <elementSetContainer>
        <elementSet elementSetId="1">
          <name>Dublin Core</name>
          <description>The Dublin Core metadata element set is common to all Omeka records, including items, files, and collections. For more information see, http://dublincore.org/documents/dces/.</description>
          <elementContainer>
            <element elementId="50">
              <name>Title</name>
              <description>A name given to the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85473">
                  <text>Casper College Challenge </text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="47">
              <name>Rights</name>
              <description>Information about rights held in and over the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85474">
                  <text>&lt;a href="http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/"&gt;http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/&lt;/a&gt;</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="41">
              <name>Description</name>
              <description>An account of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85475">
                  <text>This digital collection contains issues of Challenge, a publication of Casper College student writing from across the curriculum but outside of writing-specific courses. Issues of the publication date from 1987 to 1991 and 1993 to 1996.</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="51">
              <name>Type</name>
              <description>The nature or genre of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85476">
                  <text>Text</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="39">
              <name>Creator</name>
              <description>An entity primarily responsible for making the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85477">
                  <text>Casper College</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="44">
              <name>Language</name>
              <description>A language of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85478">
                  <text>ENG</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="43">
              <name>Identifier</name>
              <description>An unambiguous reference to the resource within a given context</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85479">
                  <text>CCA 04.ii.1996.01_Challenge</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="42">
              <name>Format</name>
              <description>The file format, physical medium, or dimensions of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85480">
                  <text>PDF</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
          </elementContainer>
        </elementSet>
      </elementSetContainer>
    </collection>
    <itemType itemTypeId="1">
      <name>Text</name>
      <description>A resource consisting primarily of words for reading. Examples include books, letters, dissertations, poems, newspapers, articles, archives of mailing lists. Note that facsimiles or images of texts are still of the genre Text.</description>
      <elementContainer>
        <element elementId="7">
          <name>Original Format</name>
          <description>The type of object, such as painting, sculpture, paper, photo, and additional data</description>
          <elementTextContainer>
            <elementText elementTextId="85504">
              <text>Print publication</text>
            </elementText>
          </elementTextContainer>
        </element>
      </elementContainer>
    </itemType>
    <elementSetContainer>
      <elementSet elementSetId="1">
        <name>Dublin Core</name>
        <description>The Dublin Core metadata element set is common to all Omeka records, including items, files, and collections. For more information see, http://dublincore.org/documents/dces/.</description>
        <elementContainer>
          <element elementId="50">
            <name>Title</name>
            <description>A name given to the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85482">
                <text>1987 Challenge</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="47">
            <name>Rights</name>
            <description>Information about rights held in and over the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85483">
                <text>&lt;a href="http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/"&gt;http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/&lt;/a&gt;</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="56">
            <name>Date Created</name>
            <description>Date of creation of the resource.</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85484">
                <text>1987</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="41">
            <name>Description</name>
            <description>An account of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85485">
                <text>1987 issue of Challenge, a publication of Casper College student writing from across the curriculum but outside of writing-specific courses.</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="51">
            <name>Type</name>
            <description>The nature or genre of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85486">
                <text>Text</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="39">
            <name>Creator</name>
            <description>An entity primarily responsible for making the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85487">
                <text>Casper College</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="44">
            <name>Language</name>
            <description>A language of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85488">
                <text>ENG</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="70">
            <name>Is Part Of</name>
            <description>A related resource in which the described resource is physically or logically included.</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85489">
                <text>Casper College Challenge, CCA 04.ii.1996.01 WyCaC US. Casper College Archives and Special Collections.</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="43">
            <name>Identifier</name>
            <description>An unambiguous reference to the resource within a given context</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85490">
                <text>CCA 04.ii.1996.01_Challenge_1987</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="42">
            <name>Format</name>
            <description>The file format, physical medium, or dimensions of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85491">
                <text>PDF</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
        </elementContainer>
      </elementSet>
    </elementSetContainer>
  </item>
  <item itemId="8006" public="1" featured="0">
    <fileContainer>
      <file fileId="8357">
        <src>https://caspercollege.cvlcollections.org/files/original/11cda2e39f9491d8162c4ec01ce2f8eb.pdf</src>
        <authentication>d0a55d06a5eed3f461f9406f6900c0f3</authentication>
        <elementSetContainer>
          <elementSet elementSetId="4">
            <name>PDF Text</name>
            <description/>
            <elementContainer>
              <element elementId="92">
                <name>Text</name>
                <description/>
                <elementTextContainer>
                  <elementText elementTextId="85462">
                    <text>������������������������������������</text>
                  </elementText>
                </elementTextContainer>
              </element>
            </elementContainer>
          </elementSet>
        </elementSetContainer>
      </file>
    </fileContainer>
    <collection collectionId="11">
      <elementSetContainer>
        <elementSet elementSetId="1">
          <name>Dublin Core</name>
          <description>The Dublin Core metadata element set is common to all Omeka records, including items, files, and collections. For more information see, http://dublincore.org/documents/dces/.</description>
          <elementContainer>
            <element elementId="50">
              <name>Title</name>
              <description>A name given to the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="1822">
                  <text>Frances Seely Webb Collection</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="63">
              <name>Access Rights</name>
              <description>Information about who can access the resource or an indication of its security status. Access Rights may include information regarding access or restrictions based on privacy, security, or other policies.</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="1823">
                  <text>The material in this collection may be reused so long as attribution is provided to its original source.</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="41">
              <name>Description</name>
              <description>An account of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="1824">
                  <text>The Frances Seely Webb Collection contains over 1,400 photographs, correspondence, handwritten research notes, the proof copy of Webb's book, Casper's First Homes, and a series of scrapbooks. Materials documents Casper buildings, cultural institutions, homes, and society from 1890-1978. Also included are photographs of individuals and groups visually documenting Casper society. In addition are items originally collected by Boney Earnest, a frontiersman and former member of the Natrona County Historical Society. Subjects documented in Webb’s correspondence, notebooks, and scrapbooks include things related to her ongoing research, obituaries, Casper and Natrona County homes, businesses, and cultural institutions.</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="39">
              <name>Creator</name>
              <description>An entity primarily responsible for making the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="1825">
                  <text>Frances Seely Webb</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="45">
              <name>Publisher</name>
              <description>An entity responsible for making the resource available</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="1826">
                  <text>Casper College Archives and Special Collections (Western History Center)</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="47">
              <name>Rights</name>
              <description>Information about rights held in and over the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="3337">
                  <text>&lt;a href="http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/NKC/1.0/"&gt;http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/NKC/1.0/&lt;/a&gt;</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="43">
              <name>Identifier</name>
              <description>An unambiguous reference to the resource within a given context</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="13034">
                  <text>NCA 01.v.1985.02</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
          </elementContainer>
        </elementSet>
      </elementSetContainer>
    </collection>
    <itemType itemTypeId="1">
      <name>Text</name>
      <description>A resource consisting primarily of words for reading. Examples include books, letters, dissertations, poems, newspapers, articles, archives of mailing lists. Note that facsimiles or images of texts are still of the genre Text.</description>
      <elementContainer>
        <element elementId="7">
          <name>Original Format</name>
          <description>The type of object, such as painting, sculpture, paper, photo, and additional data</description>
          <elementTextContainer>
            <elementText elementTextId="85472">
              <text>Printed Writings</text>
            </elementText>
          </elementTextContainer>
        </element>
      </elementContainer>
    </itemType>
    <elementSetContainer>
      <elementSet elementSetId="1">
        <name>Dublin Core</name>
        <description>The Dublin Core metadata element set is common to all Omeka records, including items, files, and collections. For more information see, http://dublincore.org/documents/dces/.</description>
        <elementContainer>
          <element elementId="50">
            <name>Title</name>
            <description>A name given to the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85463">
                <text>Powder River, Wyoming Papers</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="47">
            <name>Rights</name>
            <description>Information about rights held in and over the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85464">
                <text>http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="56">
            <name>Date Created</name>
            <description>Date of creation of the resource.</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85465">
                <text>January 27, 1985</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="41">
            <name>Description</name>
            <description>An account of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85466">
                <text> A collection of writings and various papers from Powder River, Wyoming found in the Frances Seely Webb Collection</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="51">
            <name>Type</name>
            <description>The nature or genre of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85467">
                <text>Text</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="39">
            <name>Creator</name>
            <description>An entity primarily responsible for making the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85468">
                <text>Natrona County Pioneers, Frances Seely Webb</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="44">
            <name>Language</name>
            <description>A language of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85469">
                <text>ENG</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="70">
            <name>Is Part Of</name>
            <description>A related resource in which the described resource is physically or logically included.</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85470">
                <text>Frances Seely Webb Collection NCA 01.R.1985.1</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="43">
            <name>Identifier</name>
            <description>An unambiguous reference to the resource within a given context</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85471">
                <text>NCA_01.v.1998.02_PowderRiver,WyomingPapers</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
        </elementContainer>
      </elementSet>
    </elementSetContainer>
  </item>
  <item itemId="8005" public="1" featured="0">
    <fileContainer>
      <file fileId="8356">
        <src>https://caspercollege.cvlcollections.org/files/original/7bfebcf281581d4db0331a0b3487bda2.pdf</src>
        <authentication>c9cb2e57460215db32b10f2bd21ba30c</authentication>
        <elementSetContainer>
          <elementSet elementSetId="4">
            <name>PDF Text</name>
            <description/>
            <elementContainer>
              <element elementId="92">
                <name>Text</name>
                <description/>
                <elementTextContainer>
                  <elementText elementTextId="85451">
                    <text>�����������������������������������������������������������������������������������������������������������������������������������������������������������������</text>
                  </elementText>
                </elementTextContainer>
              </element>
            </elementContainer>
          </elementSet>
        </elementSetContainer>
      </file>
    </fileContainer>
    <collection collectionId="211">
      <elementSetContainer>
        <elementSet elementSetId="1">
          <name>Dublin Core</name>
          <description>The Dublin Core metadata element set is common to all Omeka records, including items, files, and collections. For more information see, http://dublincore.org/documents/dces/.</description>
          <elementContainer>
            <element elementId="50">
              <name>Title</name>
              <description>A name given to the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85279">
                  <text>Angus Morrison Skiing Records </text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="47">
              <name>Rights</name>
              <description>Information about rights held in and over the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85280">
                  <text>http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="56">
              <name>Date Created</name>
              <description>Date of creation of the resource.</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85281">
                  <text>1950-1993</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="41">
              <name>Description</name>
              <description>An account of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85282">
                  <text>A collection of ski files collected, written, and kept by Angus Morrison, a member of Wyoming Ski Patrol for Casper</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="51">
              <name>Type</name>
              <description>The nature or genre of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85283">
                  <text>Text</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="39">
              <name>Creator</name>
              <description>An entity primarily responsible for making the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85284">
                  <text>Angus Morrison</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="44">
              <name>Language</name>
              <description>A language of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85285">
                  <text>ENG</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="70">
              <name>Is Part Of</name>
              <description>A related resource in which the described resource is physically or logically included.</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85286">
                  <text>Angus Morrison Family Records: Angus Morrison Papers, NCA 01.2022.01 WyCaC US</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="43">
              <name>Identifier</name>
              <description>An unambiguous reference to the resource within a given context</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85287">
                  <text> NCA 01.2022.01 WyCaC US</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
          </elementContainer>
        </elementSet>
      </elementSetContainer>
    </collection>
    <itemType itemTypeId="1">
      <name>Text</name>
      <description>A resource consisting primarily of words for reading. Examples include books, letters, dissertations, poems, newspapers, articles, archives of mailing lists. Note that facsimiles or images of texts are still of the genre Text.</description>
      <elementContainer>
        <element elementId="7">
          <name>Original Format</name>
          <description>The type of object, such as painting, sculpture, paper, photo, and additional data</description>
          <elementTextContainer>
            <elementText elementTextId="85461">
              <text>Printed Materials</text>
            </elementText>
          </elementTextContainer>
        </element>
      </elementContainer>
    </itemType>
    <elementSetContainer>
      <elementSet elementSetId="1">
        <name>Dublin Core</name>
        <description>The Dublin Core metadata element set is common to all Omeka records, including items, files, and collections. For more information see, http://dublincore.org/documents/dces/.</description>
        <elementContainer>
          <element elementId="50">
            <name>Title</name>
            <description>A name given to the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85452">
                <text>US Ski Coaches Association Files</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="47">
            <name>Rights</name>
            <description>Information about rights held in and over the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85453">
                <text>http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="56">
            <name>Date Created</name>
            <description>Date of creation of the resource.</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85454">
                <text>1965</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="41">
            <name>Description</name>
            <description>An account of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85455">
                <text>A collection of documents, letters, articles, notebook pages, and booklets about Ski safety, association by-laws, and articles of incorporation</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="51">
            <name>Type</name>
            <description>The nature or genre of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85456">
                <text>Text</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="39">
            <name>Creator</name>
            <description>An entity primarily responsible for making the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85457">
                <text>Angus Morrison and various Ski Association members</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="44">
            <name>Language</name>
            <description>A language of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85458">
                <text>ENG</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="70">
            <name>Is Part Of</name>
            <description>A related resource in which the described resource is physically or logically included.</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85459">
                <text>Angus Morrison Family Records: Angus Morrison Papers, NCA 01.2022.01 WyCaC US</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="43">
            <name>Identifier</name>
            <description>An unambiguous reference to the resource within a given context</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85460">
                <text>NCA 01.2022.01 WyCaC US_USSkiCoachesAssociationFiles</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
        </elementContainer>
      </elementSet>
    </elementSetContainer>
  </item>
  <item itemId="8004" public="1" featured="0">
    <fileContainer>
      <file fileId="8355">
        <src>https://caspercollege.cvlcollections.org/files/original/c56d4b1759c6c09e43e1cf68ca7ad08a.pdf</src>
        <authentication>d9a8edf42f2504074f62adf9423cead2</authentication>
        <elementSetContainer>
          <elementSet elementSetId="4">
            <name>PDF Text</name>
            <description/>
            <elementContainer>
              <element elementId="92">
                <name>Text</name>
                <description/>
                <elementTextContainer>
                  <elementText elementTextId="85441">
                    <text>�</text>
                  </elementText>
                </elementTextContainer>
              </element>
            </elementContainer>
          </elementSet>
        </elementSetContainer>
      </file>
    </fileContainer>
    <collection collectionId="211">
      <elementSetContainer>
        <elementSet elementSetId="1">
          <name>Dublin Core</name>
          <description>The Dublin Core metadata element set is common to all Omeka records, including items, files, and collections. For more information see, http://dublincore.org/documents/dces/.</description>
          <elementContainer>
            <element elementId="50">
              <name>Title</name>
              <description>A name given to the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85279">
                  <text>Angus Morrison Skiing Records </text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="47">
              <name>Rights</name>
              <description>Information about rights held in and over the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85280">
                  <text>http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="56">
              <name>Date Created</name>
              <description>Date of creation of the resource.</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85281">
                  <text>1950-1993</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="41">
              <name>Description</name>
              <description>An account of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85282">
                  <text>A collection of ski files collected, written, and kept by Angus Morrison, a member of Wyoming Ski Patrol for Casper</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="51">
              <name>Type</name>
              <description>The nature or genre of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85283">
                  <text>Text</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="39">
              <name>Creator</name>
              <description>An entity primarily responsible for making the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85284">
                  <text>Angus Morrison</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="44">
              <name>Language</name>
              <description>A language of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85285">
                  <text>ENG</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="70">
              <name>Is Part Of</name>
              <description>A related resource in which the described resource is physically or logically included.</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85286">
                  <text>Angus Morrison Family Records: Angus Morrison Papers, NCA 01.2022.01 WyCaC US</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="43">
              <name>Identifier</name>
              <description>An unambiguous reference to the resource within a given context</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85287">
                  <text> NCA 01.2022.01 WyCaC US</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
          </elementContainer>
        </elementSet>
      </elementSetContainer>
    </collection>
    <itemType itemTypeId="1">
      <name>Text</name>
      <description>A resource consisting primarily of words for reading. Examples include books, letters, dissertations, poems, newspapers, articles, archives of mailing lists. Note that facsimiles or images of texts are still of the genre Text.</description>
      <elementContainer>
        <element elementId="7">
          <name>Original Format</name>
          <description>The type of object, such as painting, sculpture, paper, photo, and additional data</description>
          <elementTextContainer>
            <elementText elementTextId="85450">
              <text>Printed Certificate of Service</text>
            </elementText>
          </elementTextContainer>
        </element>
      </elementContainer>
    </itemType>
    <elementSetContainer>
      <elementSet elementSetId="1">
        <name>Dublin Core</name>
        <description>The Dublin Core metadata element set is common to all Omeka records, including items, files, and collections. For more information see, http://dublincore.org/documents/dces/.</description>
        <elementContainer>
          <element elementId="50">
            <name>Title</name>
            <description>A name given to the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85442">
                <text>Texaco Certificate of Appreciation for Employees Angus Morrison, 35 Years of Service</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="47">
            <name>Rights</name>
            <description>Information about rights held in and over the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85443">
                <text>http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="41">
            <name>Description</name>
            <description>An account of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85444">
                <text>Texaco Certificate of Appreciation to Angus Morrison for 35 Years of Service</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="51">
            <name>Type</name>
            <description>The nature or genre of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85445">
                <text>Text</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="39">
            <name>Creator</name>
            <description>An entity primarily responsible for making the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85446">
                <text>Texaco Inc. Casper Area</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="44">
            <name>Language</name>
            <description>A language of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85447">
                <text>ENG</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="70">
            <name>Is Part Of</name>
            <description>A related resource in which the described resource is physically or logically included.</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85448">
                <text>Angus Morrison Family Records: Angus Morrison Papers, NCA 01.2022.01 WyCaC US</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="43">
            <name>Identifier</name>
            <description>An unambiguous reference to the resource within a given context</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85449">
                <text>NCA 01.2022.01 WyCaC US_TexacoCertificateofAppreciation</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
        </elementContainer>
      </elementSet>
    </elementSetContainer>
  </item>
  <item itemId="8003" public="1" featured="0">
    <fileContainer>
      <file fileId="8354">
        <src>https://caspercollege.cvlcollections.org/files/original/85edfc6e4a3d44363e09388916833b93.pdf</src>
        <authentication>9598e4fab172a74ccffad18afa4378b0</authentication>
        <elementSetContainer>
          <elementSet elementSetId="4">
            <name>PDF Text</name>
            <description/>
            <elementContainer>
              <element elementId="92">
                <name>Text</name>
                <description/>
                <elementTextContainer>
                  <elementText elementTextId="85430">
                    <text>�����������</text>
                  </elementText>
                </elementTextContainer>
              </element>
            </elementContainer>
          </elementSet>
        </elementSetContainer>
      </file>
    </fileContainer>
    <collection collectionId="211">
      <elementSetContainer>
        <elementSet elementSetId="1">
          <name>Dublin Core</name>
          <description>The Dublin Core metadata element set is common to all Omeka records, including items, files, and collections. For more information see, http://dublincore.org/documents/dces/.</description>
          <elementContainer>
            <element elementId="50">
              <name>Title</name>
              <description>A name given to the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85279">
                  <text>Angus Morrison Skiing Records </text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="47">
              <name>Rights</name>
              <description>Information about rights held in and over the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85280">
                  <text>http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="56">
              <name>Date Created</name>
              <description>Date of creation of the resource.</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85281">
                  <text>1950-1993</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="41">
              <name>Description</name>
              <description>An account of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85282">
                  <text>A collection of ski files collected, written, and kept by Angus Morrison, a member of Wyoming Ski Patrol for Casper</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="51">
              <name>Type</name>
              <description>The nature or genre of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85283">
                  <text>Text</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="39">
              <name>Creator</name>
              <description>An entity primarily responsible for making the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85284">
                  <text>Angus Morrison</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="44">
              <name>Language</name>
              <description>A language of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85285">
                  <text>ENG</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="70">
              <name>Is Part Of</name>
              <description>A related resource in which the described resource is physically or logically included.</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85286">
                  <text>Angus Morrison Family Records: Angus Morrison Papers, NCA 01.2022.01 WyCaC US</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="43">
              <name>Identifier</name>
              <description>An unambiguous reference to the resource within a given context</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85287">
                  <text> NCA 01.2022.01 WyCaC US</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
          </elementContainer>
        </elementSet>
      </elementSetContainer>
    </collection>
    <itemType itemTypeId="1">
      <name>Text</name>
      <description>A resource consisting primarily of words for reading. Examples include books, letters, dissertations, poems, newspapers, articles, archives of mailing lists. Note that facsimiles or images of texts are still of the genre Text.</description>
      <elementContainer>
        <element elementId="7">
          <name>Original Format</name>
          <description>The type of object, such as painting, sculpture, paper, photo, and additional data</description>
          <elementTextContainer>
            <elementText elementTextId="85440">
              <text>Printed Maps, Written Papers</text>
            </elementText>
          </elementTextContainer>
        </element>
      </elementContainer>
    </itemType>
    <elementSetContainer>
      <elementSet elementSetId="1">
        <name>Dublin Core</name>
        <description>The Dublin Core metadata element set is common to all Omeka records, including items, files, and collections. For more information see, http://dublincore.org/documents/dces/.</description>
        <elementContainer>
          <element elementId="50">
            <name>Title</name>
            <description>A name given to the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85431">
                <text>City of Casper Ski Safety: Hogadon</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="47">
            <name>Rights</name>
            <description>Information about rights held in and over the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85432">
                <text>http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="56">
            <name>Date Created</name>
            <description>Date of creation of the resource.</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85433">
                <text>October 5, 2000</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="41">
            <name>Description</name>
            <description>An account of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85434">
                <text>Maps and descriptions of ski operations and safety at Hogadon on Casper Mountain</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="51">
            <name>Type</name>
            <description>The nature or genre of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85435">
                <text>Text</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="39">
            <name>Creator</name>
            <description>An entity primarily responsible for making the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85436">
                <text>Angus Morrison, City of Casper, Motorola Inc.</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="44">
            <name>Language</name>
            <description>A language of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85437">
                <text>ENG</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="70">
            <name>Is Part Of</name>
            <description>A related resource in which the described resource is physically or logically included.</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85438">
                <text>Angus Morrison Family Records: Angus Morrison Papers, NCA 01.2022.01 WyCaC US</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="43">
            <name>Identifier</name>
            <description>An unambiguous reference to the resource within a given context</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85439">
                <text>NCA 01.2022.01 WyCaC US_SkiSafety</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
        </elementContainer>
      </elementSet>
    </elementSetContainer>
  </item>
  <item itemId="8002" public="1" featured="0">
    <fileContainer>
      <file fileId="8353">
        <src>https://caspercollege.cvlcollections.org/files/original/b51fc66253681d64d62ceeee2b50660d.pdf</src>
        <authentication>afc6520f6f2a4dc1c281e0fdaab7744c</authentication>
        <elementSetContainer>
          <elementSet elementSetId="4">
            <name>PDF Text</name>
            <description/>
            <elementContainer>
              <element elementId="92">
                <name>Text</name>
                <description/>
                <elementTextContainer>
                  <elementText elementTextId="85419">
                    <text>���</text>
                  </elementText>
                </elementTextContainer>
              </element>
            </elementContainer>
          </elementSet>
        </elementSetContainer>
      </file>
    </fileContainer>
    <collection collectionId="211">
      <elementSetContainer>
        <elementSet elementSetId="1">
          <name>Dublin Core</name>
          <description>The Dublin Core metadata element set is common to all Omeka records, including items, files, and collections. For more information see, http://dublincore.org/documents/dces/.</description>
          <elementContainer>
            <element elementId="50">
              <name>Title</name>
              <description>A name given to the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85279">
                  <text>Angus Morrison Skiing Records </text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="47">
              <name>Rights</name>
              <description>Information about rights held in and over the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85280">
                  <text>http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="56">
              <name>Date Created</name>
              <description>Date of creation of the resource.</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85281">
                  <text>1950-1993</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="41">
              <name>Description</name>
              <description>An account of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85282">
                  <text>A collection of ski files collected, written, and kept by Angus Morrison, a member of Wyoming Ski Patrol for Casper</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="51">
              <name>Type</name>
              <description>The nature or genre of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85283">
                  <text>Text</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="39">
              <name>Creator</name>
              <description>An entity primarily responsible for making the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85284">
                  <text>Angus Morrison</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="44">
              <name>Language</name>
              <description>A language of the resource</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85285">
                  <text>ENG</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="70">
              <name>Is Part Of</name>
              <description>A related resource in which the described resource is physically or logically included.</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85286">
                  <text>Angus Morrison Family Records: Angus Morrison Papers, NCA 01.2022.01 WyCaC US</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
            <element elementId="43">
              <name>Identifier</name>
              <description>An unambiguous reference to the resource within a given context</description>
              <elementTextContainer>
                <elementText elementTextId="85287">
                  <text> NCA 01.2022.01 WyCaC US</text>
                </elementText>
              </elementTextContainer>
            </element>
          </elementContainer>
        </elementSet>
      </elementSetContainer>
    </collection>
    <itemType itemTypeId="1">
      <name>Text</name>
      <description>A resource consisting primarily of words for reading. Examples include books, letters, dissertations, poems, newspapers, articles, archives of mailing lists. Note that facsimiles or images of texts are still of the genre Text.</description>
      <elementContainer>
        <element elementId="7">
          <name>Original Format</name>
          <description>The type of object, such as painting, sculpture, paper, photo, and additional data</description>
          <elementTextContainer>
            <elementText elementTextId="85429">
              <text>Printed Papers</text>
            </elementText>
          </elementTextContainer>
        </element>
      </elementContainer>
    </itemType>
    <elementSetContainer>
      <elementSet elementSetId="1">
        <name>Dublin Core</name>
        <description>The Dublin Core metadata element set is common to all Omeka records, including items, files, and collections. For more information see, http://dublincore.org/documents/dces/.</description>
        <elementContainer>
          <element elementId="50">
            <name>Title</name>
            <description>A name given to the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85420">
                <text>1/6/1985 United States Ski Association Competition Division Ski Competition Results: Casper Slalom Men's</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="47">
            <name>Rights</name>
            <description>Information about rights held in and over the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85421">
                <text>http://rightsstatements.org/vocab/InC/1.0/</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="56">
            <name>Date Created</name>
            <description>Date of creation of the resource.</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85422">
                <text>January 6, 1985</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="41">
            <name>Description</name>
            <description>An account of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85423">
                <text>1985 Results for Casper Slalom Men's United States Ski Association Northern Division Ski Competition</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="51">
            <name>Type</name>
            <description>The nature or genre of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85424">
                <text>Text</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="39">
            <name>Creator</name>
            <description>An entity primarily responsible for making the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85425">
                <text>Angus Morrison and United States Ski Association Competition Northern Division Ski Competition</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="44">
            <name>Language</name>
            <description>A language of the resource</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85426">
                <text>ENG</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="70">
            <name>Is Part Of</name>
            <description>A related resource in which the described resource is physically or logically included.</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85427">
                <text>Angus Morrison Family Records: Angus Morrison Papers, NCA 01.2022.01 WyCaC US</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
          <element elementId="43">
            <name>Identifier</name>
            <description>An unambiguous reference to the resource within a given context</description>
            <elementTextContainer>
              <elementText elementTextId="85428">
                <text>NCA 01.2022.01 WyCaC US_SkiCompetitionResults_08</text>
              </elementText>
            </elementTextContainer>
          </element>
        </elementContainer>
      </elementSet>
    </elementSetContainer>
  </item>
</itemContainer>
